Qeh Afar
Qeh Afar
HISTORICAL ASPECTS
by
ABDULMALIK ABUBAKER
A DISSERTATION
TUSCALOOSA, ALABAMA
2016
Copyright Abdulmalik Abubaker 2016
ALL RIGHTS RESERVED
ABSTRACT
The subject under consideration in this dissertation is various values of a particular
society who refer to themselves as gey usu (people of the city). To expound how they utilize
values to regulate their members’ behaviors and the relations they have with other people four
Family as the basic institution is discussed to expound how birth and marriage
ceremonies are perceived by Hararis. How these events are surrounded by various symbols with
the values enshrined in them, which are expressed through rituals, actions, words and gestures,
are as well expounded. The mechanisms how these symbols are used to regulate individual and
Education as one of the vital instruments to develop the individuals and the society which
should enjoy continuous sufficiency and prosperity is also discussed. How successful the society
is in achieving these goals is dependent on the values the education system is promoting.
Trade, which is much related with Harar and Hararis history, how it is used as a means of
securing and maintaining peace through concessions to other people is discussed. This
dissertation suggests the underlying ideas of peaceful trade are values such as righteousness,
honesty, sincerity, diligence, trust, non-discrimination and fairness in the relations among
traders.
The Harari social institutions are used to control the behaviors of their members and the
relations the community should have with other communities. They are used as a device to
ii
exclude from or to include others to Harari. The underlying values they apply to that end are
The qualitative research method presented here is based upon fieldwork conducted in
Harar for more than two and half years. Empirical and conceptual literatures review, regarding
Harar and the concept and theories of values (a concept that is common to different disciplines),
Key words: Harar, Hararis, values, family, education, trade, social institutions.
iii
DEDICATION
To my late mother, Fatima Muhammad and Harari ayach, the custodian of Harari values.
iv
LIST OF TERMS
List of Terms1
Aada-custom
Abba-elder brother, form of address to the father or to an older brother, or to a male person that
is older than the speaker, any young man acting as ‘brother’
Abbay-elder sister, form of address to the mother or to an older sister, or to a female person that
is older than the speaker, any young woman acting as ‘sister’
Absum- circumcision
funeral)
Agri-shield
Ahli-relative
Ai-mother
Aala-cane (of durra, sorghum) when it is still fresh, stem of sorghum when it has sweet taste
Alawada-kitchen
1
To avoid unnecessary controversies the Etymological Dictionary of Harari by Wolf Leslau (1963; 1983) is used.
Latin Scripts are used to write Harari words, songs, idioms, etc.
v
Alfi-thousand
Alim-learned, erudite
Amir-sovereign, king
Amuta-mourning, lamentation
Anna-paternal aunt
Anqar-stomach
Ardawij-disciple
Arafa-religious feast
Aruz-bridegroom
Aruzit-bride
Ashiday-classmate
Ashir gar-higher religious education taken in the evening either at the house of the teacher or in
Atlas-a kind of black dress made of silk women wear over the ordinary dress on festivals
Aw-father
Ay-mother
vi
Azab-hell
Bab-grandfather
Baha- women’s voluntary rotating credit association formed by young wives or it is a system for
Baqal-mule
Bari (Bariyach, plural form)-entrance or door leading either to the compound or the house, gate
of the city;
Challas-raw
Chat-a flowering plant native to East Africa and the Arabian Peninsula
Damin-tribal chief
Delaw-nomadic life
Dera soman-eating in the dera during the Ramadan so that no one can see.
Dumaal-the young male relatives and friends of the husband in relation to the wife
vii
Duwa-blessing
Edil Adaha or Arafa-a holyday celebrated on the 70 th day after Edil Fitr.
Eih-younger brother
Eihit-younger sister
Ekhesta-maternal aunt
Ezair-paternal uncle
Fard-an obligation that one cannot do away, for example 5 times daily praying.
Ferengi-European
Gab- cave
Gabti-door
Ganan-cooked dough
Gangora-leopard
Gar-house, room
viii
Gey- the city of Harar, city
Guguba-a kind of yellow earth used for the roof to prevent water from seeping through
Hadar-stale
Hamat-mother-in-law
Hamburti-naval
Hamil-pillar
Haras-woman in childbed
Haras mowta ziara-visitation to Ai Abida or Aw Abadir on the 40th day after the birth of a child
Hatam-a bride up to the end of the first year, newly married until she gives birth to her first child
Hinna gel-bridesmaid
ix
Ilma gosa-become adoptee through adopting ritual according to Oromo culture
Imam-prayer leader
Imamat-turban
Inay gabata-special food sent by the bride’s mother to the bride on the third day of the wedding
In-eye
Indoch-woman
Jamaa-men or women coming together to help each other in weeding and mourning.
Jin-spirit
Jinam-mad
Kabir-religious teacher
Kaka-maternal uncle
Kurumbay-elbow
Lazim-caller to prayer
x
Luh-plank, board, wooden writing tablet
Maddi-ink
Madrasa-school
Mahalaq-coins, money
Makhmakha-proverb
Makhazu-pillar of a house
Malaq- official who is responsible for the welfare of each locality connected with one of the five
Mistijab-time of evening when incense is put into the censer placed at the door for the saint, dead
or Prophet
Muazin-caller to prayer
Muz-banana
Nabi-prophet
Nadaba-raised seat
xi
Nikah-marriage contract
Qabila-nationality
Qahat-female
Qahwah-drink made either from the beans, leaves or husk of the coffee tree or from the tea
leaves
Qutti qala-small room in the upper story where goods are stored
Sadaqah- alms
Salat-prayer
Sati baqla-a kind of shawl given to the bridegroom by the bride’s father
xii
Sutri nadaba-a hidden nadaba
Taqet-niches
Tilli-hawk
Tumtugar- house where farm implements, pots, tools and ornaments were produced and
marketed
Tot-breast, bosom
Toya-neighbor
Uf-nose
Ulama-Islamic scholars
Umma-grandmother
Wadri-thigh
Waldi-son, child
Waqallim-sausage
Waraba Nudul-hyena hole that was used by hyenas to come into and go out from the jugal.
Wantef-carpet
xiii
Wesamoy-toilet
Prophet Muhammad
Zikri-a devotional activity characterized by singing hymns with lyrics praising Allah, the Prophet
Zugma-first born
xiv
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
PhD work comes from the contribution and hard work of several people. This one is also
the outcome of a number of people who contributed valuable ideas at different levels in different
capacities. The first person whom I would like to thank is Professor Norman Singer not only for
the valuable advice and help he rendered to me from the inception of the idea of selecting this
title and while writing this paper but also for making me change the understanding I had relating
to law and other institutions the society utilizes to regulate its members. This took place through
the lectures he offered in the classes as well as on the discussions we always had whenever we
happened to be together. He is my gidir kabir. Alla Megan Professor Singer! You deserve iji wa
urus.
Such a work as this would not have come to fruition had it not been for the concerted
efforts and continued support from Donna Morrow, University of Alabama, who continuously
kept me connected with Alabama University and provided me with all the materials I needed to
write this thesis. She deserves special thanks and gratitude. Similar thanks goes to Assistant
Professor Glory Nirmala, Haramaya University, College of Law, who took the pains to edit the
English language of this paper and provided me with articles I used to write the chapters on
values and symbolism. I would like to say Alla Megan to both Donna and Glory.
Studies, who is one of the authorities in Harari studies, is the one who gave me his backing and
follow up in my endeavor to write this thesis. He took the pains to edit both the language and the
substance of this paper. He is my gidir kabir as well who deserves Alla Megan.
xv
I was taught about Hararis by many Harari Kabirach. Kabir Abdulmuheimen
Abdulnassir, without whose lecture and help this work would not have come out as it stands,
deserves Alla Megan. The following Abayach (plural form of abay) who taught me as tit kabir
deserve more than Alla Megan: Abay Remla Ahmed Yonis, Nabiha Muhammad Sucker, Atiqa
Hassen Bekri, Fatimah Ahmed Sharif, Ay Ayesha Ahmed Dadafi and Muluka Abdulhamid
Ahmed are some. Kabir Abdullahi Muhammad, kabir Abdullahi Adus, Ezair Abdulwasi
Abdurrahman Ali, Ezair Abdullahi Hassan Sheriff, Sheikh Ahmad Kebu, Ezair Yusuf
Muhammad Idris, Ezair Kamil Sharif and Abubakari Saidi Yusuf (Abo wa) all gave me their
time and hosted me at their home to teach me about Hararis. They are my tit Kabirach who
funded my study and Haramaya University that granted me study leave with pay.
There are friends and relatives who shared with me their life experiences and property.
Abdulqadir Shami who shared with me his experience in afocha comes first. I would not have
known about afocha established by Harari diasporas had I not been enlightened by my hamaachi
Abdul-Wadud Jami, Toronto, Canada, and Hanim Muhammad Abubaker who has still kept her
membership to her afocha in Dallas, USA, though she is currently residing in Dire Dawa,
Ethiopia. My nephew, Umar Muhammad, who lives in USA, provided me with a Flip video
camera that I used to video-record all interviews I had with my Kabirach. Wassim Jami, my
nephew who lives in Toronto paid to the editor who edited the language and the format of this
dissertation deserves my heartfelt thanks. Behar Abdalla let me use his camera to photograph
places of significant events. Ammar Muhammad, who lives in Toronto, Canada, supplied me
with books on symbolism. Nabil and his sister Ahadnet Yusuf Succar provided me with books
xvi
and always shared their time to discuss Harari issues with me. All deserve special Alla Megan
Institutions and their staffs contributed a lot to this work. University of Alabama made
available the West law and Lexes Nixes databases and taught me the application. On top of this I
was provided with the Alabama University School of law library database. These institutions and
their staffs deserve special thanks. Institute of Ethiopian Studies and its staff who facilitated the
acquisition of all materials written on Harar and Hararis, Aada Gara (Harari Cultural Center),
especially Fethia Ahmed, the curator, Arthur Rimbaud House staff, especially Abdulnassir
Abdullahi and his wife Seada Ibrahim, Harari People Regional State Justice and Security Affairs
Bureau staff, Sheik Ahmed Quran Gey Kabirach and ardwijach, especially Ayesha Semir
Redwan and her cousins, Salihin KG and Sheikh Abubaker elementary school students and
Special gratitude goes to malasay afocha, Amir Nur Jamaa, leqot jamaa members and
Hamdan Ibrahim friends who allowed me to attend their gatherings and have first-hand
information on the modus operandi of the meetings. I am forever grateful to all I have mentioned
hereinabove and to those whom I have not but who still contributed in one way or the other for
this work to see the light of the day. Finally my great Alla Megan goes to my family, particularly
my older sister Amatullah Abubaker, without whose constant support and prayer I would not
Abdulmalik Abubaker
xvii
CONTENTS
ABSTRACT ..................................................................................................................... ii
DEDICATION .................................................................................................................. iv
LIST OF TERMS.............................................................................................................. v
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS ................................................................................................. xv
Originality .................................................................................................................... 7
Research Method.......................................................................................................... 8
xviii
CHAPTER TWO: WHO ARE WE TALKING ABOUT? ................................................. 18
Awach .......................................................................................................................... 58
Menelik’s Occupation.............................................................................................. 73
xix
Values and Beliefs .................................................................................................. 85
Birth………………………………………………………………………………………119
Marriage....................................................................................................................... 123
xx
Aroz Megba, Wedding Day Proper ............................................................................... 135
Introduction………………………………………………………………………………144
Agri-Agri: One of the Conventional Military Trainings Offered in the Quran gey ..... 156
xxi
Quran Gey These Days............................................................................................... 166
Introduction.................................................................................................................. 183
Agency......................................................................................................................... 204
xxii
Introduction.................................................................................................................. 216
Afocha............................................................................................................................ 227
xxiii
LIST OF FIGURES
Figure 10: Medhanialem Church and the Memorial for the Martyrs of
the Battle of Chelenko ..................................................................................... 118
Figure 15: The ransom collected to solicit the pairs of shoes............................................ 140
xxiv
CHAPTER ONE: GENERAL INTRODUCTION
Harar, the walled city, is known as the ancient capital of Islam in the Horn of Africa. It is
also known as a trade center connecting Africa through the neighboring Christian empire of
Ethiopia with the rest of the world. Merchants were coming to Harar, Zeila and Barbara from
India, Pakistan, China, and even from America to sell their merchandise and buy items brought
Merchants were coming to Harar not only to do business, but they also preferred to live
there. It is very hard to find a Harari family whose roots are not from outside. There are Harari
families who are descendants from India, Syria, Pakistan, Japan, Egypt, Yemen, Saudi Arabia,
The movement of people was not only inward but outward as well. Hararis went out from
Harar not only to trade but also to teach Islam. Some scholars would leave Harar for good, settle
and establish their family among the people they taught. Or otherwise Hararis went out to learn
Islam to places such as Saudi Arabia and Wallo and return home. Hararis also granted
scholarships to others who came to Harar and never returned back to their people.
Hararis were in continuous war with the Ethiopian Christian highlanders either to control
the trade routes, or expand Islam or both; they, however, were in uninterrupted trade relations as
well. They were working in close co-operation with the surrounding Oromos and Somalis to
protect the trade routes from Harar to Zeila and Barbara. They were ruled by Egyptians for ten
1
years. Great Britain had governed Harar for a very brief period after it forced the Egyptian forces
to leave Harar until her flag was lowered by Amir Abdullahi. Finally, Harar was annexed and
The Hararis created their values through the relations they had among themselves and
with all these people from outside who were in turn influenced by the Harari values. Due to this
reason, the Hararis can be said to be the subjects and objects of their values. In the former case
they created the values while in the latter case they were regulated, shaped and reshaped by the
values. As pointed out by Tenna (2009) “as subjects they make it, as objects they are made by
it.” (p. 4). As a subject the Hararis would like to make the best out of these values.
The history of Hararis was not all roses. There was a time when they faced famine that
drove them to practice cannibalism. In addition, they had several experiences of external
aggressions and internal feuds. On the other hand, they also enjoyed times of peace and
prosperity in their history. Throughout these ups and downs in their past it was their value
systems that regulated their internal relations and the experience they had with the external
forces and natural calamities they encountered. This study, therefore, endeavors to analyze and
understand the role the Harari values played in the smoothening or hardening of the relations it
It would be interesting to know, as well, the roles of those interactions the Hararis had
with various groups of people in developing Harari values. Moreover, it would be worth
knowing the contributions made by those who came to Harar for various reasons in developing
Harari values and whether they were influenced by those values in return. How Hararis used
those values not only to regulate, channel, shape and guide its members’ behaviors and actions
2
but also to regulate and smooth its relations with non-Hararis, is also another interesting issue
Harari values are not just a history. It will be interesting to know the role they play in
Ethiopia where federalism based on ethnicity is adopted. It will be interesting to know the role
the Harari values play in smoothing the relations between different ethnic groups residing, and
political parties functioning, in Harar. This thesis has attempted to establish how those values
smooth down the relations among various ethnicities who are followers of various political
Even though Harar shares the economic growth achieved by Ethiopia in the last two
decades still much has to be done to fight poverty, ignorance, illiteracy and lack of health
facilities. As well much has to be done in fighting corruption, nepotism, dishonesty, indolence,
greed and lust which are the natural consequences of this growth. Therefore, the study further
tried to find out the role Harari values played and should play in this fight against poverty and
other evils, to see if there are any experiences to be drawn from those maneuvers. Values have
much power in affecting the development of human kind positively or negatively. This made the
Population wise Hararis, for various reasons, have not grown when compared with the
surrounding people. And yet, they maintained themselves without being threatened by the
population explosion of others for instance, the Oromos, and resettlement of the Amharas. That,
however, made them minorities. Finally, an attempt is made to find out the role the Harari values
3
Background Of The Study
How trade was carried and teaching of Islam was undertaken and what institutions were
involved in that maneuver by Hararis has been studied by many scholars. The values upon which
the trade relations, religion and the various institutions were built have not yet been studied as an
independent topic. This thesis as its first aim, therefore, has identified and analyzed these values.
The study analyzed the background of the values and discovered events and relations which
influenced them. While Harari culture (value) has its distinct features, trade contacts of centuries
to Central Ethiopia and to the coast, the Egyptian occupation, the presence of Arab, Indian,
Greek and Italian merchants around the turn of the century, the Amhara provincial and military
administration, and eventually the Italian colonial period have all left their marks in the culture
having universal character. It discussed as well whether both occupying forces-Egyptian and
Ethiopian forces-had lasting comprehensive impact on Harari values or vice versa. How Hararis
used their values to interact with and regulate the relations they had with their neighbors, (i.e.
Oromos and Somalis) is another point of discussion of this study. In the meantime, the Harari
values are examined to find out whether they are inclusive or exclusive.
instrument to attain the intended goal, which the research seeks to address, and at the same time
they serve as a search light for this study. Hence, the main objectives of the study are to:
1. Identify Harari values that guide, channel and regulate the behavior and actions of
individuals as well as groups;
2. Find out how these values are created by the Hararis and in turn how the same values
shaped and re-shaped the Hararis;
4
3. Find out how Hararis utilized their values to promote economic, social and other
interests;
4. Find out how Hararis used their values to establish the smooth relations they had with
other ethnic groups;
5. Inform policy makers and legislators on Harari values so that they could give due
consideration of these values while formulating policies and issuing laws;
6. Categorize Harari values to predict the behavior of individuals and groups;
7. Serve as an initiation for further studies on values of Harari and other groups in Ethiopia.
Research Problems
1. What are the Harari values and how are they manipulated by Hararis to regulate, guide and
channel individual and group (family, schools, social gatherings, ethnicities, etc.) behaviors and
how they contribute to the stability of Harari community?
2. How have Hararis utilized their values to smooth relations they had with their surrounding
communities?
3. Why are those values expressed that way and what are their implications?
4. What are the relations that exist between/among various values, and which value(s) is/are core
values and why?
5. Do Hararis utilize their values for moderation, positive action, tranquility, and peace in social
life or to promote enmity and revenge?
6. Have Harari values undergone change through time? How has globalization affected Harari
values? What is at stake for Harari values in the future?
These are some of the questions to which this research has come up with probable answers.
Accurate and reliable data related with the Harari values is derived from the research
already conducted. Further data is collected from field research and analyzed by using suitable
research techniques. To that end, all authorities of the concerned institutions in the Regional
State of Harari, the Harari elders, and historians, and numerous museums in Harar have extended
previous research undertaken on the Hararis history. Ethiopian Civil Service College and Faculty
of law of Addis Ababa University were additional resources for the required data for this
research. West law and Lexes Nixes databases, which are made available to this program,
satisfied the requirement of facilities such as a well-equipped library facility. On top of this,
Alabama University School of law library database access has been provided. Thus, facilities
relevant to the research were sufficiently available to complete the research within the time
available.
the Hararis and the Oromos. Most people, including those in the administration, believe such
type of political arrangement between the Hararis and the Oromos is new in its kind. It will be
clear from this study that this kind of political arrangement was to advance mutual interests and
trust based on their shared values. Informing current administrators on these values will help
them to look for common grounds which will indeed assist in advancing economic and social
The lessons and experiences will be shared with other Regional States at the federal level.
In the conclusion efforts are made to sort out and categorize Harari values which may encourage
further studies to identify common values in broader dimensions at the national level.
As it is stated, various aspects of Harari life have been studied by different scholars. The
study of the Harari values, however, is new in its kind. Thus, this study will create awareness
among the Hararis in understanding the values which are a manifestation of their identity. So far
these values have been transferred from one generation to the next through oral literatures and
6
various social institutions. In the meantime, Harari values have to be systematically organized,
transmitted, and learned by the younger generation. It is believed, therefore, this study will
contribute to that goal. One of the ways of attaining this is to make Harari values part of the
curriculum of elementary and high schools in the Harari Regional State. This study could serve
as a starting point for that purpose. Furthermore, in the course of identifying Harari values, the
discussion and recounting made, the finding arrived at, and the conclusion made from those
In addition, further research, studying the values of other ethnic groups could identify not
only the unique values of the ethnic group under study but it could help to identify the common
values of all ethnic groups of Ethiopia. This will create a suitable ground for mutual
understanding, which is essential for development based on tolerance and respect for each other.
Originality
Different aspects of the history of Harar and Hararis have been studied by many scholars.
To mention few among many are: Burton (1894), R. Pankhurst (1968); Muhammad Hassan
(1973); Wagner (1974); Stitz (1975); Caulk (1977); Waldron (1984); Abbas Ahmed (1992), and
None of them, however, identified and studied the values of the Hararis. None of them
studied the relevance of Harari values in light of regulating, guiding and channeling the
behaviors and actions of its members at individual and group levels. Thus, the study has novelty
and originality.
7
Usefulness And Social Relevancy
It is believed this study will make significant contribution to resolve the practical
problem the policy makers and legislators have faced in formulating policies and issuing laws
that could serve the common interests of the Hararis and the Oromos and other ethnic groups
residing in the region. Furthermore, it will assist in predicting the behavior of individuals and
groups and knowing the reasons why they act, behave or do not act or behave that way.
Research Method
human behavior, to reduce this behavior to a set of statistics is difficult as Fedorak (2007)
postulates. For this reason, in this research qualitative research methods are used; these includes
interviewing, observing and participating in the daily lives and activities of the Hararis that
enabled the researcher to check the findings against reality. Hence, the participant observation
research method was widely used. For instance, in the case of wedding ceremonies the researcher
purposefully took an active part in ceremonial activities performed by men, such as Mawlid, and
Nikah, (i.e. ceremony held to legalize the marriage). In ceremonies that required only the
participation of women, the researcher conducted discussions with them and video recorded the
Johnson (1990), while sharing his field research experiences, noted how the position he
maintained at a fish camp (converted cannery) gave him an opportunity to actually participate in
the system that gave him exceptional access to people and information. Similarly, the fact the
researcher was born in Harar and grew up within a community that spoke the Harari language,
therefore, participating in Hararis daily lives, enabled the researcher to develop a much deeper
understanding of the range of Hararis behavior. The researcher listened to what the Hararis were
8
telling, closely observing various rites, ceremonies, holiday rituals, etc. and where necessary
participated in the same. The first school the researcher attended was a traditional school, Quran
gey, and then after joined madrasah. Kabir gar was the life experience. Quran gey graduation
ceremonies were attended to observe the existing values and the changes they have undergone.
Before starting this research the researcher was not favorably placed in a better position
than any ordinary Harari in studying Harari values. To write about the Harari values it was
inescapable to study Harari values on purpose equipped with a tested research method. With that
in mind sufficient time (more than two and a half years) was spent in Harar and other places
where Hararis live. This gave the researcher an opportunity to have an in-depth understanding of
Harari values in particular and values in general which could not have been achieved without
participant observation.
The research benefited from the in-depth interviews recorded and transcribed. Some were
recorded by means of extended notes. People from different walks of life, elders, both women
and men, and boys and girls who live inside and outside of Harar were interviewed.
Observational data were collected, as well as visual materials such as photographs and video
recordings of weddings and other ceremonies were used. Events and rituals in shrines and other
special places or sites were video recorded. Hence, what Johnson (1990) stated as both
Both primary and secondary sources were used in writing this dissertation. Primary
sources including Harari and Ethiopian chronicle and reports on oral research conducted in
Harar, which are available at the Institute of Ethiopian Studies at Addis Ababa University, were
widely utilized. Further official correspondence containing reports, maps, and discussions of the
city and its hinterlands were analyzed. Other primary archival sources including British, French
9
and Italian correspondence, as well as diaries and letters of agents, traders, and missionaries who
visited the city were studied. Secondary sources including the vast literature on the history of
Harar, the Somalis, the Oromos, and Ethiopia and other countries were well-read. Mothers,
fathers and known historians of Harar were interviewed. Sites such as Shrines, Awach and
cultural centers were visited. Marriage and burial ceremonies, various festivities and meetings of
Prior to and while writing this thesis, two types of literature reviews were made:
empirical literature consisting of studies made earlier about Harar and Hararis; and conceptual
literature, regarding the concept and theories of values. The following are the main, but by no
means limited to, empirical literatures. For instance, Burton (1894) who visited Harar in 1850
indicating the location of Harar, wrote on what the city was built with, what its palace and
houses looked like, the vegetation, what its people ate and looked like, who was ruling the city,
and how the relations between the Hararis and the surrounding people were regulated.
Similar illustration was given by Paulitschke (1888; 1893) in Hecht (1982) and Blundell
(1900), who visited Harar with an interval of 30 and 43 years after Burton (1894) respectively.
Paulitschke’s illustration was especially rich in detail. He gave extensive information, for
instance, on the changes that took place in the way of life of Hararis after Burton’s visit. He even
Some travelers, such as Harmsworth (1935), and Gleichen (1898) while writing on
Ethiopia raised and discussed some issues related with Harar. Other scholars, particularly
contemporary ones, dealt with specific issues such as trade, religion, shrines, basket works,
social institutions and the political economy relations Hararis had with their surrounding people.
10
Assistant Professor Ahmed Zekaria (1991) informed on how Harari coins were developed
and the wider area in which they were in circulation. He further illustrated the economy of Harar
in the 18th century focusing on one of the Amirs of Harar (Ahmed Zekaria, 1997). Similar study
and analysis was made by Yusuf Ahmed (1965). Stitz (1975), on the other hand elaborated the
popular economy of Harar in the 18 th century discussing how business contracts were formulated
between parties including the Amirs and their subjects. A similar subject is discussed by Wagner
Waldron (1984) illustrated how Hararis and Oromos smoothed their relations making a
division of labor in the economy and sharing the benefit that was derived from it. Ahmed Hassan
Omer (2001), provided information on the interior trade route, specifically from Harar to Shewa,
based on the diary of known merchants and the discussion he had with those merchants who
were doing business in Shawa and Harar. Further information on Harar trade and other social
issues is given by Ben-Dror (2008) when Harar was under Egyptian rule, while R. Pankhurst
(1965 and 1968) wrote about how and why trade boomed after Harar was occupied by Menelik.
How Hararis handled the pre- and post- Menelik occupation era is discussed in detail by
Caulk (1967; 1971; 1975; and 1977). He specifically noted on the role the religious leaders and
elders played in shaping the policy of the Amirs. The mechanisms utilized by the Hararis to avert
the threat they faced at the first arrival of the pastoralists and in keeping their city and the trade
routes safe was also analyzed by Caulk (1977). He further elaborated on the role the Harari
elders played in negotiating with Menelik after Hararis were defeated in the Chelenque battle.
Detailed studies and analyses were made on various social issues by notable scholars.
Waldron (1975a) conducted detailed studies on Harari social organizations, such as afocha,
marign, gel and jamaa and how they are used in social control applying various mechanisms. On
11
the other hand, while Hecht (1982b) dealt with only afocha and baha in relation to the social
status of gey indochach, Huurne (2004) discussed how afocha and baha could be used in poverty
Hecht’s (1982b) research on gey gar made one travel through time and observe the
changes those houses had undergone from Burton (1894) to Paulitschke (1884; 1893). VO Van
(2007) gave detailed information on the naming of various parts of gey gar accompanied by
beautiful pictures. What is accomplished inside these houses and Jugal is beautifully described
by Gibb (1997; 1999; and 2002). She discussed how Hararis start family, how a woman who
gives birth to first child is trained to look after her baby, the rituals, the songs in the marriage
ceremony, the reverence the Hararis have for the awach and how those awach served as a
Ayele Haile (1999), Assefa Abbebe (May 1988), and Abdurrahman Mohammed (1953)
shared their knowledge on Harari marriage. The songs on marriage ceremonies and other
Abdulmuheimen Abdulnassir (1996 and 2010). Woube Kassaye (2010) also studied Harari music
to show the significance of Harari pop songs to foster local knowledge of cultural tradition.
analysis of Harar with Lamu and with Wallo from the religious point of view is undertaken by
Hecht (1987) and the late Professor Hussein Ahmed (2010), respectively. On the other hand
Muhammad Hassen (1999), explained the role of the Amirs and Hararis in the Islamization of the
Oromo in Hararghe. Some Harari idioms are discussed by Abdurrahman Muhammad Koram
(1992) and Abdi-Khalil (2007) those are utilized to elaborate Harari values in this research.
12
With the help of these and other literatures coupled with the field research, Harari values
are identified and analyzed to understand how they are utilized to regulate individual, group and
social behaviors. It was worthy to know what values are in general to attain that goal. Hence,
reviews of literatures on values were undertaken. The concept of values is discussed by various
social sciences. To avoid unnecessary controversies this research preferred discussing elements
in the definition of values based on definitions given by Kluckhohn (1951) and Rokeach (1973).
Philosophical (Moore and Bruder, 2005), anthropological (Fedorak, 2007 and Graeber, 2001),
psychological and sociological (Rokeach, 1973; Schwartz and Bilsky 1990; Schwartz, 1994)
(1951), Rokeach (1973), Feather (1975), Schwartz and Bilsky (1990), and Moore and Bruder
(2005), to mention few. Kluckhohn classified them based on what he called dimension, while
Rokeach’s classification was institutional. To identify and analyze Harari values this research
applied Rokeach’s approach. Schwartz (1994) classifies values based on what he calls universal
requirements. His approach is used to find common elements that could be shared by Harari
Gey usu or Harari speaks Gey sinan (Harari language), observes Gey aada, (the Harari
culture), and belongs to one of the social organizations (Afocha, Jamaa, etc.) depending on age
and sex. As Muslims Hararis observe the obligatory duties (fard) such as performing daily
prayers, fasting during the holy month of Ramadan, giving alms to the needy, etc. The
13
This thesis does not discuss these duties and the values they are governed with. In some
instances, however, where some of the values manifest in relation to some of these duties, an
effort will be made to talk about the roles these duties play in actualizing various values.
Traditionally, for instance, the Kabir of the Quran Gey used to pray in Friday congregation in the
first row. His pupils also had the privilege to pray in the next row after their Kabir while children
of their age would not have that opportunity. Hence, the row in which one prays the fard is an
expression of the respect the community has towards Islamic knowledge and a mechanism to
In the month of Ramadan Quran Gey or madrasah boys used to build their own tiny
house in their families’ compounds where they spent the Ramadan night with their friends. In a
way they developed a skill required to be a mason. Hence, Hararis used Ramadan as an
opportunity to teach their children various skills which would lead them to self-discipline and
independence.
There are other types of duties which are not obligatory and the non- adherence of such
duties as Musa Kazim Gulcur (2010) observed would only be shortcoming. Examples are giving
money or goods which is called sadaqah, to those in need and being kind and polite to everyone.
Those values that regulate corresponding behaviors would be discussed as contextualized by the
Hararis. Nevertheless, the Harari values, which regulate behaviors and the Islamic values could
converge or diverge at certain points. Since both regulate behaviors the probability of their
convergence is very likely. Nevertheless, as it will be seen except in those fard Islamic values
Hararis have contextualized most of the Islamic values while implementing them.
14
As the areas of interest could be different in scope neither the state laws which are
general in scope and formulated in some written language and issued at federal or state level are
discussed, though they regulate behaviors of citizens using state apparatuses to enforce them
Hararis values cover phenomena ranging from how to build gey gar to what purposes
each part of the gey gar serves; from who should sit where to the manner to be observed when
entering gey gar; from how to bring up children to what and how to teach them; who should
receive the bride wealth to the role women play from birth to death; from neighborhood to Jugal
not only as a pile of stones but as the conveyors of Harari history; from the reverence Hararis
have for the Awach to their devotion to their religion; from enculturation of other cultures, to
assimilation of non-Hararis. The mechanisms they apply to make sure the values are observed
range from a mother’s facial expression to ostracizing. Nevertheless, the scope of behaviors
Chapter Arrangements
This study is organized into eight chapters. The first chapter consists of the general
introduction and the major sub-titles that include the statement of the problem, background of the
study, objectives, importance, urgency and originality, usefulness and social relevancy of the
research. They are discussed very briefly. The method used for the study is also discussed.
Finally, the literature review and limitation of the research are also briefly stated in this chapter.
The second chapter presents a long and unique history of Harar including its various
political, religious and social institutions in brief. In this chapter the political and social
structures of the Hararis are discussed. Mainly the Amir, mosques, shrines or awach and other
institutions Hararis used to administer their affairs and smooth or worsen their relations with the
15
surrounding people are discussed. The Jugal, the bariyach, toyach (plural form of toya), the gey
garach and their inside parts with their purpose and how they are arranged and in turn shaped
Hararis are introduced in this chapter. The occupation of Harar by foreign forces and its
The third chapter deals with the generic concept of values with their classification and
importance. How each human group possesses a common set of values and regulates its life
accordingly, establishing norms, rules and standards are dealt with. An attempt is made in this
chapter to depict how it is hard to find anything in society that is devoid of value. The
assumption is to show that individuals, families, education, businesses and even politics are not
value-free. On the other hand, values help us to understand diversity as in current civilizations
and cultures diversity substantially exists in their norms, values and outlooks.
Assuming Hararis are not free from such presumption, the following chapters examine
various backgrounds of Harari values and whether they are influenced by external factors. As the
forefathers of the Hararis are from different historical, cultural and religious backgrounds the
chapters tried to find out how much of the various values of the Hararis are influenced by those
backgrounds.
The fourth chapter deals with some Harari family symbolism and values enshrined in
them. How symbolic values are utilized to regulate and control individual, family, and social
relations and behaviors are discussed in detail in this chapter. This chapter above all explains
how birth and marriage ceremonies are perceived by Hararis. It expounds how these events are
surrounded by various symbols which are expressed through rituals, actions, words and gestures.
The values enshrined in these symbols are as well expounded. The mechanisms these symbols
used to regulate and channel individual and social behaviors are also discussed
16
The fifth chapter describes traditional Harari education and values they promote and how
they regulate various relations at various levels in the society and educational institutions. This
chapter explores whether Harari values are influenced by Islamic teaching or Hararis indeed
utilized their values to contextualize Islam. It notes the role the community and the government
played in running the educational institutions. It explores how Hararis used education to pacify
their relations with their neighbors and duly preserved their city. The Quran Gey and Gey
Madrasa in old as well as present days have focused on illustrating how values regulate social
The sixth chapter describes business ethics and values in Harari society. Trade history of
Harar, how Hararis protected Harar and its trade routes and regulated relations among traders on
the one hand and between Hararis and the Oromos and Somalis on the other hand are the subject
of this chapter. This chapter demonstrates how Hararis used their trade and business values as a
source of peace not conflict. It also examines whether these values were protecting private
property rights individuals had and how they are distinct from communal ones.
The seventh chapter is devoted to various Harari social institutions and the values they
applied to regulate their members’ relations on the one hand and the relations between Harari
community and non-Hararis on the other hand. It expounds how these institutions with their
values were utilized by the Hararis to preserve and protect Hararis from being infiltrated by non-
Hararis while on the other hand Hararis have been using these institutions as straining devices
for those who would like to join Harari. Afocha, baha, jamaa, marign and gel are some of the
social institutions created and utilized to regulate the relations of Harari community and the
17
CHAPTER TWO: WHO ARE WE TALKING ABOUT?
the Greek and Roman world, the Renaissance, Humanism and Enlightenment, Reformation and
Counter-Reformation including the religious wars, the political liberation of the individual as a
result of the French Revolution, and finally the Industrial Revolution including the Social
Question. Likewise, to understand the Harari values it is essential to know the history of Harar
and Hararis.
Many travelers discussed Harar and Hararis from different perspectives. Burton (1894),
the first ferengi to visit Harar, described the location of the old city 220° S.W. of, and 175 statute
miles from Zayla — 257° W. of, and 219 miles distant from Berbera. This would place Harar,
said Burton(1894), in 9° 20‟ N. lat. and 42° 17‟ E. long. The altitude is, according to Burton
(1894), about 5,500 feet above sea level. After observing its landscape and vegetation he stated
its site to be the slope of a hill which falls gently from west to east. He observed that on the
eastern side are cultivated fields; westwards a terraced ridge is laid out in orchards; northwards is
a detached eminence covered with tombs; and to the south, the city declines into a low valley
bisected by a mountain burn. This irregular position is well sheltered from high winds, especially
on the northern side, by a range of which Kondura (Qundudo Mountain) is the lofty apex. Burton
(1894) concluded his description with a Persian poet singing of a heaven-favored city, “its heat is
Blundell (1900), who visited Harar 43 years after Burton (1894), described it as a
beautiful, great city that stands 5,400 feet above the sea, endowed with every condition that
makes for wealth and prosperity. He praised its people as an industrious agricultural population.
18
He categorized its extraordinarily healthy and invigorating climate as rare in the catalogue of
advantages of an African town. These industrious agricultural people refer to this beautiful great
city as Ge, ‘the city’; to themselves as Ge usu,' "people of the city"; to their culture as Ge 'aada,
"customs of the city"; to their distinct Semitic language as Ge senan, "the language of the city”;
their house as Ge Gar, their school as Quran Ge or Ge Madrasa to distinguish themselves from
Where is the origin of these Semitic people? How could they create their island and settle
in the middle of the Cushitic ocean? These are some of the questions this part is trying to answer.
All archeological sites and ruins of stone-built, cemetery, store-pits, houses and mosques
situated in the Harar plateau, a region that extends from the Churcher Mountains Southeast of the
Awash plane to the area of Hargeisa, as noted by Braukamper (1998) are attributed to the
Haralas, the oldest identifiable population in that area and who for the first time appeared in the
chronicles of Amda Seyon2. They were also mentioned as fighters in the Fethu al-Habash3.
Haralas, who were wealthy and mighty people are considered by most historians as the
ancestors of the Hararis (Braukamper 1998). Related to this Braukamper has to say:
“There are some striking similarities in the technological standards and even in structural
details between the ruins of ‘Harala sites and the architecture of Harar town. For instance, the
Harari store-pits resemble in their form and mode of construction to the so-called Bolla-Harda
which are frequently in Churcher and still used by the present- day Oromo.” (p.2)
The similarity is not limited to store pits. A new excavation undertaken by Ethiopian and
French archeologists around Nora-an Ethiopian Pompeii- brought to light an architecture style of
traditional Arab cities, more significantly the city of Harar. In that site a Mosque with a five
2
King of Abyssinia (1314-1344)
3
The Arabic report about the war waged by Imam b. Ibrahim, commonly known as Gragn Ahmed by the
Abyssinians.
19
meter high wall is discovered. Around the Mosque one can see the remains of houses, fallen
walls, and graves. The houses were built of stones (Fauvelle-Aymar et al. 2006). This new
discovery strengthens what Braukamper (1998) assumed about Haralas and the Hararis, though
the new site is not in the Harar plateaus. Besides, it indicates the size of political territories
Ashes from volcanic eruptions were observed beside these remains of houses, fallen
walls and graves. If these areas were proven to be settlements of the Haralas, the folklore told by
the Oromo of the Churcher and Harar region that natural catastrophe such as hunger sent by God
as punishment for the Haralas’ wasteful pride attributed to their disappearance would be well
received. A tradition is also told of a hunger crisis that was managed by the legendary man Aw
Abadir, which probably enabled some Haralas to survive and settle in Harar.
Braukamper (1998) also connected the Hararis and the Haralas through linguistic
relations. The East Gurage whose ancestors belonged to the political federation of Hadiya, before
being forced to leave and start living at the western escarpment of the Rift Valley, used to live in
Churcher. They speak the same Semitic language as Hararis and both are referred to by the
Oromo as Adare. From what has been said, two conclusions are made by Cohen (1931), and as
Haberland (Braukamper, 1998, p. 3) notes the first one is the Semitic language zone once
covered a compact area stretching from the Northern Valley to the eastern escarpment of the
Harar plateau, and the second is existence of close ethnic connection between the Harari and the
ancient Haralas.
20
Hararis As Semites
According to Kabir Abdulmuheimen Abdulnassir 4, as any other social order Harar and its
vicinities passed through various developments from gab (cave) to delaw (nomadic life), and
then to derga, (pastoralist) and from gey fagay (rural) to gey (Urban life). Though it is not clear
at which stage the Semites joined the indigenous people, the Semites were settled farmers when
they arrived in the Cushitic land. Some (Encyclopedia Britannica) suggested those Semites were
from Hadrmawt (South Arabia) who migrated in the seventh century AD. Emran (2006)
mentioned other sources, though he has not revealed these sources, that suggested Arab
immigrants, after the death of Negus As-Hama (Ahmed al-Nagashi), left Tigray, headed for the
This is not far away from what other historians wrote about the ancestral background of
Hararis. Abir (1980), for instance, classifies the immigrants from Arabia into those who settled
in the northern Ethiopia and those who crossed the Babb al-Man dab and settled among the
Cushites of the Harar-Churcher plateau. While the first group after intermingling with the
Cushitic societies resulted in producing the Tigray and Amharas, the second group intermarrying
with local residents produced the Semitized culture of the Adare of Harar (Gibb, 1997).
On the other hand, the French trader Alfred Bardey as Gibb (1997a) notes suggested that
the Hararis were an offspring of the union of immigrants of Arab and Persian descent and Oromo
slaves. Though it is unclear where Bardey's information on the subject came from, he stated
definitively that it was under a religious leader named Abd el Kader Jailan that forty priests and
sheikhs from the exiled Ali sect of the Fatimites fled Baghdad with their families and came to
Ethiopia. They were reported to have come across the present site of Harar where they found five
well-situated villages on a hill. It was here that they settled and, proclaiming them-selves
4
An interview held with the local historian on January 27, 2013
21
"messengers of God and the Prophet" began their mission of propagating Islam amongst the local
population (1998 p.55). When one observes some of the traditional practices of Hararis it seems
Bardey’s story has a grain of truth. Like the Shiets the Hararis have shrines; they observe the day
of Ashura; they refer to Fatima and Ali on several occasions, especially on marriage ceremonies,
etc.
ከሐረርጌ ግምብ ውሰጥ የሚኖሩት ሕህብ ከሐማሴን የመጡ ሕዝብ ናቸው፡፡ በሐማሴን አንድ ሀይለኛ ጀግና
ሰው በዓፄ ዳዊት ዘመን ነበር፡፡ በሀለኛነቱ ሰው ጠልቶት ከሰው ተለይቶ ሚሰቱንና ልጆቹን ይዞ ለብቻው በችፍግ
ዱር ውሰጥ ቤት ሠርቶ ተቀመጠ፡፡ ከዕለታት አንድ ቀን ሚሰቱ ቅቤ አጠጣችው፡፡ እርሱም ደክሞ ለብቻው
ልጆቸዋን ይዛ ሰትመለሰ ባለዋን አንበሳ ጎትቶት ከወለሉ ላይ ተንዘራርቶ ሙቶ ቆያት፤ እርሰዋም ሆዱን ቀዳ
የጠጣውን ቅቤ በዕቃ ቀድታ ለወንዶቹ ሁሉ አቀመሰቻቸው፡፡ ይህንንም ማድረግዋ ጠንቋይ ‘ባልሸ ሊሞት
ጊዜው ደርሰዋል፤ በድንገት ሳይታሰብ አንበሳ ይገድለዋል፤ ቅቤ አጠቺው፤ አንበሳም ከገደለው በኋላ ሆዱን
ቀደሸ ከሆዱ ያለውን ቅቤ በዕቃ ተቀብለሸ ለልጆቹ አጠጫቸው፤ እንደ አንበሳም ባለግርማ ይሆናሉ፤ ጠላትም
ከፊታቸው አይቆምም፤ አሸናፊዎችና የሚያሰፈሩ ይሆናሉ፡፡’ ብሎኣት ነበርና ሰለዚህ ነው ይላሉ፡፡ ይህ ታሪክ
ከዚያ በኋላ ጠላቶች የአባታቸውን ሞት ሰምተው እንግዲህ የዚያን የርጉም ልጆች ከምድር እናጥፍቸው ብለው
የማይቆም ሆነ፡፡ አገር እያሴረ እንደገና ጦር እየሆነ ቢያሰቸግራቸው ጓዛቸውን አንሰተው ከብታቸውን ነድተው
እየተዋጉና እየተከላከሉ እሰከ ሐረርጌ ተሰደዱ፤ አዚያም ተቀምጠው ከብዙ ዘመን በኋላ በዙሪያቸው ያለ ሌላው
ሕዝብ የማያኖር ቢሆን ከወንድሞቻቸው አንዱን በላያቸው አለቃ ሹመው ጠላትን እየተዋጉ ድል እያደረጉ
በዙሪያቸው ያለውን አሸንፈው ገዙት፡፡ ግምብም አጠሩ፡፡ አምሰት በርም አደረጉለት፡፡ ከዘመን ብዛት ትግርኛ
22
My Translation
Those who live these days in the walled city (of Harar) came from Hamasin. A warrior
lived in Hamasin during the reign of Asti Dawit. He was living in a forest with his wife and
children for he was disliked by the people for his courage. Once upon a time his wife made him
to drink raw butter that weakened him and made him fall asleep. Meanwhile, she left with the
children to harvest crop. When she returned she found her husband had been killed by a lion.
Immediately tearing his stomach and taking out the butter she made the children take a small sip.
She had been advised by a sorcerer to make her children drink the butter she would pour from
her husband’s stomach as he would be killed by a lion. Her children would be courageous as like
a lion and no enemy withstand their assault. They would always be winners and source of
anxiety to their enemies. This is written in Gedle Marcos and anybody interested can look into it.
The news about the death of the father reached the enemy who arouse to completely wipe
out the children. The children, however, won the battle defeating the enemy. No enemy could
face them. When the whole population, however, plotted and stood against them they migrated to
Harar gey simultaneously fighting to defend their property and family. Nevertheless, since the
surrounding people would not let them live in peace, they fought back under the leadership of
one of their brothers and subdued those people. They also built a wall with five gates. After so
many years their language Tigrigna was changed into another language. Still, however, their
Hence, Hararis probably first settled at Harar or elsewhere bringing with them, as stated by
Trimingham (1952), the civilization of the Sabiyan. Therefore, though their number was small,
(450 is suggested by Emran, 2006) their impact on the culture, language and political structure of
the Cushitic and Hamitic societies that absorbed them was deep and lasting. These peasant and
23
agriculturalist settlers introduced the use of metals, certain domestic animals, new plants, an
advanced system of irrigation, new forms of communal organization, and the art of writing.
Kabir Abdulmuheiman5 mentioned three settlements, i.e. essankhanti Gey, Tukhun Gey
and Etante Gey as localities for Semites settlements. Essankhanti Gey is located on the way to
Jigjiga at a place called Werke Ras where currently the Argobas are living. First the Semites
settled there probably for one or two generations. They found it unsuitable for living for it was
Then they moved further north and settled at Tukhun Gey. Its location is between Dakar
and a farm land known as Mawir. They stayed again there for one or two generations. Finally
they moved and settled at Etante Gey (this is Gey). According to folklore collected and narrated
by Amare and Krikorian (1973) a group of religious and civic leaders who met one day to
determine a suitable site to establish a new city chose four sites. After a long argument, for its
suitable elevation, the splendid landscape and the many rivers and streams in the area, Harar was
selected.
Forefathers Of Hararis
Unlike Burton (1894) who met individuals from Maghreb (Morocco), Persia, Mecca
(Arabia), Yemen, Damascus, Oman, Egypt, etc. but attributed the beauty of gey induchach
(ladies) to the female slaves who came from Abyssinia it would be reasonable to say the beauty
of Harari indochach could be the result of the fusion of foreign settlers with the indigenous
people.
Martin (1975) noted that many such individuals from Yemen, Hijaz, and especially from
Hadrmawt reached Zeila and traveled inland to Harar and the various Islamic emirates where
their influence was most significant (Haggai 1994). Even recently, after Harar was occupied by
5
Interview on April 6th 2013 in Harar
24
Menelik Harar continued to be a town where every group of human and belief was coming
together for as Harmsworth observed, “every race and creed seemed to be represented here-
Somalis, Oromos, Arabs, Egyptians, Danakil, Indians, Greeks, and Armenians.” (1935, p. 178).
It is hard to find any Harari who does not claim ancestors from outside. In addition to
those mentioned hereinabove, Hararis’ forefathers are also from Pakistan, India, Turkey, Israel,
Oromiya, Somali, Tigray, Argoba, Wallo, Shawa, etc. One can even notice Greeks were settlers
in Harar, for once Harari Greek, according to Haggai (1994) appealed to Ras Makonen against a
demonstration held by Hararis in support of the victory over Greek by the Ottoman army.
Hussein (2010) also mentions Faqih Hashim b. Abd al-Aziz (1765d) a cleric originally from
Gondär settled in Harar and introduced Sufism. Illustrations are given below following
Thus, Hararis who claim descent from the Arabs and Persians have dark coffee skin and
tightly curled hair with rounder face than the Amharas, whom they resemble more than they do
25
the Oromos. (Nicholl, 1997). Edward (1897) however, described the Hararis as a mixture of
Oromo and R’hotta, though it is not clear who the latter ones are.
People would adopt Harari way of life and easily become Harari. According to the Alam
family6, Aw Alam, the occupying Egyptian army member, escaped from being hunted and taken
to Egypt by wrapping himself in a big carpet. It is surprising that Burton (1894) could escape that
trap and did not long for Harar like Arthur Rimbaud who provided his legacy to his servant and
feared one day he would disappear among the African people (Nicholl, 1997). It will be seen in
the course of the discussions how Hararis utilize various institutions to turn individuals to Harari.
Boundaries Of Harar
While few Harari settlers became urban dwellers others continued as farmers. This is
reflected in the verses of the popular Zikri, i.e. Allahu jabarow as described by Kabir
Abdulmuheiman7. It is about how Hararis requested Allah to protect their beloved ones who
“Oh God provide your protection to my cow and maternal uncle who is tending her in the
black mountain.” The mountain turns out to be black when it is too far away from the place one
watches it. Kabir Abdulmuheiman referred Gara Mullata to be that Tey Seri. Aw Kamil
Abubaker Sheriff8, however, described Tey Seri as any place where there is no religion, dark,
6
Personal communication
7
Interview on April 6th 2013
8
He was a teacher and board member of Abadir School that was established by the Hararis who left Harar and
settled in Addis Ababa. Interview on June 3rd 2013 in Addis Ababa. (he died in 2015)
26
without light and uncivilized. This goes along with another song devoted for homeland, i.e. gey.
It runs as follows:
On the other hand, the territory of Harar was beyond Gara Mullata according to a Zikri
composed by Sheikh Hashim “who was an object of veneration in 16 th century” (Emran 2009, p.
27). He said:
Jinum Egna!
Sheikhum Egna!
Abadir Awzinana!
Genies, we are,
9
Early 16th century saint whose tom is located in the north of Harar
27
And Geri are ours, one, we are,
The second to the last verse of the hymn, Jahan Jarso Geri Bad zinana, is understood by
Kabir Abdulmuheiman as Jahan Jarso is our country. Hence, while Kabir Abdulmuheiman
gives importance to the place, Emran (2009) gives emphasis to the clan who lived in that
territory.
This Zikri deals with many points. Sheikh Hashim had control over the genies that were
probably provided or did for him whatever he asked them to do. He referred to himself as a
lunatic which could mean people having very strange ideas that are outside the usual range.
While the sixth Jarso who live 120 kilometers away from Harar (Emran, 2009) are basically
Oromo clans, the Geri are Somalis. When Sheikh Hashim stated they were ours, probably he was
referring to the solidarity existed between the Hararis and the Jarso and Geri based on marriage
and adoption entered between the Hararis and the Oromos on the hand, and Somalis on the other
hand. Or it could indicate the land of the Jarso and the Geri were belonging to the Hararis. It will
be observed how this solidarity was applied in regulating the trade routes. Aw Abadir was
referred to as a father probably to the Hararis, Oromos and Somalis. Probably this Zikri is
referring to the influence the Hararis had or the extent of territories they were administering.
Aba Atiqa Hassen,10 on the other hand, had stated that unknown Harar Amir Families
were joined by the genies while singing and dancing on a certain marriage ceremony held at
Jarso country. According to her account the Amir’s family, to appease the genies, add ‘Jinum
Egna!’ ‘We were also genies’ to the singing. They, however, realized that the genies would not
10
She is one of Harari elder women interviewed on June 8th 2013 in Harar
28
Bismila don zinawa
My translation:
The genies, hearing the name of God and Nabi, they just vanished, said Aba Atiqa.
Nevertheless, whoever has sung those songs for whatever purpose they indicate the extension of
the territories of Harar and the influence Hararis had in the surrounding areas.
Furthermore, according to Kabir Abdulmuheiman when business men got bankrupt they
would leave for Churcher three hundred kilometers west of Harar to join their maternal siblings.
He expressed this by saying ‘Aynew chew Churcher chew!’ When you lost your main capital, i.e.
Aynew and became bankrupt you leave for Churcher, join your maternal siblings in business,
make money and regain your main capital. That was the message.
Kabir Abdulmuheiman strengthened his statement by citing how merchants who kept a
lot of merchandise at their store refused to accept Amir Abubaker (III) bin Aftal Grad’s (1834-
1852) change of currency. He collected an additional three hundred units for every one thousand
units. The merchants left Harar and started business at Churcher or Dader.13
The new settlements discovered by the excavations, the oral traditions and telling of
Hararis inform at most the administrative territories of Harar or at least the extent and depth of
influence Harar had over its surroundings. Thus, as noted by Hecht (1987), Harari claim that
11
Chapter 36 of the Quran
12
This refers to Prophet Muhammad
13
About 200 km to the east of Harar
29
Harar, a remnant of civilization, which had spread over a wider geographical area than it does
now, goes back to the 10th century. It is, therefore, worthy to note here that the territories these
Semitic people used to administer was not limited to the wall once built around the city by Amir
region that was bounded by the Kondodo Mountain in the north, the valley of Babile in the east,
the valley of Gobelle and Mount Gara Mullata in the south and southwest, and the fertile high
land region in the west. The boundaries of Harar, however, were far from what Mohammad
(1999) mentioned. As noted by Cerulli, (1936) for instance, the extension of the boundary to the
east was the present range of the Barteri and Geri Somali cu1tivatiors and in the west into the
Churcher range of the rift projection, which connects Harar with the Ethiopian Highlands.
Hence, confining Harar that was found in 896 A.D (Abdul-Khalil, 2007, Hetch, 1992) or
7th century (Encyclopedia Britannica) only to the walled city using such terms as ‘the old walled
city of Harar,’ etc., may narrow one’s understanding of the true history of Hararis. Indeed it was
reduced to the prosperous centre of trade and religious teaching after it ceased to exist as a
capital of an empire of Adal that stretched as far as Ifat in Shawa. Archeological discoveries and
When Harar was weakened due to internal dissention and the raid by the pastoralist
Oromo, as noted by Caulk (1977), the Semitic block disintegrated into small spots into Gurage-
land, the islands of Lake Ziway, and the town of Harar that served as a safe haven to those who
abandoned the Muslim towns west of Harar on the plateau with their terraced fields. While
14
Abdi-Khalil, 2007:32
30
others are submerged by the waves of incoming Oromo, the eastern parts of the Harar plateau
disguise Harar became an independent city-state under the dynasty founded by Amir Ali ibn
Dawood (1647-1662).
Historians advanced different assumptions on who found Harar. Haggai (1994), described
Harar as an urban Islamic center of the 13 th century found by a pioneer of Sufism in the region,
Sheikh Abadir of the Qadiriyya order. This goes along a short note made by UNESCO (April
2006) to recognize Harar Jugal as world heritage which reads “there is myth, according to
which, in July 1256, there arrived from the Arab Peninsula 405 sheikhs who chose this site to
“As early as the fourteenth century, some members of the ruling family of the Walasma
dynasty of Ifat shifted their political centre from the eastern Shewa region to the highlands of
Harar. Under the control of the rulers from Ifat, the town of Harar and its environs thus became
the nucleus of the sultanate of Adal, which gradually extended its hegemony into large parts of
the hinterland of Zeila, and challenged the Christian kingdom in the north” (Hussein, 2010, p.
112)
According to Burton (1894), Harar was found by Arab invaders who, in the 7 th century,
conquered and colonized the low tract between the Red Sea and the high lands. On the other
hand, according to Abbas Ahmed (1992) those Arabs were migrants from Hadhramaut, not
invaders. Nicholl (1997) also agrees with Abbas Ahmed on who found Harar, though the twelfth
century is the period he prescribed for its establishment. Hecht (1992) without mentioning her
source, has noted that Harar had probably existed since the 9 th century.
15
Harar Jugol (Ethiopia), No 1189 rev. ICOMOS April 2006
31
Thus, while Abbas (1992) specified the Arabs as migrants from Yemen Hadhramaut,
Burton (1894) identified them simply as Arab warriors. Since conquest presupposes the
subjugation of the inhabitants of the area conquered one may say Burton (1894) assumed there
were people who were conquered by the Arabs while migration may or may not presume
inhabitants.
Unlike Burton (1894), Maftuh Zekaria (2000) agrees with Haggai (1994) and UNESCO16
for he noted that Harar was found by Aw Abadir, the legendary father of Hararis who settled
Haran, Aware, Gasa, Wergar, Gature, Addis and Abogn clans establishing advanced
administration in 940-950 A.D. in the present site of Harar. Before those clans were brought
together and were settled at Harar they were living scattered all over villages referred to as Gey,
Harewe Gey, Ruqiya Gey, and Sammti Gey. According to this version, before Harar was
established by Aw Abadir there was no place known as Harar to be conquered by the Arabs
unless the act of Aw Abadir, who was believed to come from Saudi Arabia (Haggai, 1994 and
Similar folklore is told about who selected the present location of Harar:
A group of religious and civic leaders who met one day to determine a suitable site to
establish a new city chose four sites. After long argument, a choice was made and Harar was
built on the site of the present old walled city. The choice was made because of the suitable
elevation, the splendid landscape and the many rivers and streams in the area (Amare &
Krikorian, 1973, p. 354).
Quran was sent by kabir sheikh Yusuf to rehabilitate or reorganize people (probably the Haralas)
who were displaced by natural disaster, i.e. famine and volcanic eruption. Kabir Abdulmuheimen
16
ibid
32
maintains Aw Abadir was not the one who found Harar; neither did he name the site Harar for it
existed prior to the coming of Aw Abadir under the rule of Amir Haboba (969-1000).
This goes along with what VO Van (2007) noted on how Harari tradition has witnessed a certain
Haboba, the true founder of the city and it’s Emir. Hence, according to Kabir Abdulmuheimen
and Vo Van Harar was found not by Aw Abadir, but rather by Amir Haboba, though they agree
Kabir Abdulmuheimen also disagrees with those who attribute the introduction of Islam
to Harar to Aw Abadir. He mentions the historical incident when Amir Haboba led an expedition
against his own deputy Wazir Tay Limay Ber-khat who legalized non-Islamic practices such as
drinking alcohol, prostitution and other vices in Dakar, where he was assigned to administer.
According to Kabir Abdulmuheimen, this confirms Islam was introduced to Harar before Aw
Abadir. Kabir Abdullah Adus17 mentioned that Islam was introduced to Harar by merchants who
were doing business with Mecca before it became the official religion of the Arabian Peninsula.
He cites a frequently heard reflection on how Hararis accepted Islam. The saying is ‘werbain
semenew! Amenebiew!’ ‘We heard the news and we believed in him (the messenger of God!)’.
where Aw Abadir became curious and asked the Muazine (caller for prayer) of the grand Mosque
why people did not show up for the Mehkrib Salat (prayer following sunset) while they came at
daytime to perform Zuhr Salat (mid-day prayer) and Asri Salat (late afternoon prayer) in
congregation, which he led. The two incidents, according to the three Kabirs, confirm that Islam
was introduced to Harar prior to Aw Abadir. This goes along with the suggestion made by
17
Interview on July 9th 2013 in Dire Dawa
18
Local historian
33
historians like (Braukamper, 2002, Trimingham, 1951, Wagner, 1974) who noted the presence of
Islam two to three centuries before the coming of Aw Abadir. To that end, three Mosques of
Harar (Aw Mansur and Garad Muhammad Abogn in Jugal, and Aw Mashhad Mosque outside)
To summarize, the Hararis are the descendants of the Semitic people who migrated from
South Arabia with their civilization and settled in the area that stretched from Churcher
Mountain southeast of the Awash Plane to the area of Hargessa. The rulers of that vast area of
land were the Haralas, the ancestors of the Hararis. They fused with the indigenous people who
were not comparable with them in technological standards. In that process, which probably took
centuries, they formed their state with a roaming capital depending on various factors. One of
Whoever was the founder, Harar acquired its present shape by Amir Nur (1549-1567)
who, according to Harari tradition, on one occasion sitting on Gey Humburti- the Navel of Harar-
begged Khadir19 that some Sharif might be brought from Mecca to build a permanent city
(Burton, 1894 and Maftuh, 2000). His request was accepted and Sharif Yonis, his son Fekr-el
Din, and a descendant from the Ansar or Auxiliaries of the Prophet came to Harar and helped
and build the wall. Historical records show that over seventy kings (Amirs) had governed the
The presence of mosques in large number was usually taken as a proof for Harar as the
center of Islamic education (Nicholl, 1997). This is half true, for as it will be seen, mosques in
Harar were not only venues to teach Islam. They were also institutions where other social
19
The nearest equivalent figure in the literature of the People of the scripture, the Christians and the Jews, is
Melchizedek or Melchisedek.
34
activities were undertaken and even sometimes they were, as it is pointed out by Abdel-Hady
(2010), “a vital cornerstone in the building of any Muslim community, as well as the Islamic
As Kabir Abdulmuheiman narrated20 each locality, at least, has one mosque. In the olden
times each healthy male was expected to pray Subh Salat (the dawn prayer) at a mosque in his
vicinity. This would help aw lazim, (the Muazine) to make certain everybody is around, healthy
and well. If, for instance, an individual was absent for two or more days from Subh Salat the
He either would report his observation to his local elders or find out the problem by
visiting the absentee’s house. Or, the community elders sitting on the entrance of one of the gates
on bare makhada (pillow of a gate) would observe the behavior of farmers while returning from
farming. For instance, if an individual farmer was in a hurry to return to his home the assumption
was that, that individual was in good terms with his family, neighbors, etc. On the other hand, if
he was reluctant while returning to his home the elder would assume that, that man might have a
According to Aba Atiqa and Kabir Abdullahi Muhammad,21 Harari induchach used to go
to chat or fruit gardens in the vicinity of Harar to collect the produce and sell the same in the
market. They freely disposed of the produce they collected from their farm. If it is owned by
someone else, however, she would share the proceeds with the owner. 22 In Harari it is called
Moy.
20
Interview on 27th January 2013 in Harar
21
Interview on 6th February 2013 in Harar
22
The researcher remembers his mother doing such kind of business with her-in-laws
35
Harari induchach would leave for the garden, leaving their infants either in mosques or
awach (shrine) if they did not have someone at home to look after their children. When the
mothers came back to pick up their children they would bring qahwah (tea made from roasted
coffee leaf and milk) and ukhat, Harari injera or local bread for the service rendered by the
personnel in the mosques or awach. This was how asri subat (late snack) was resumed.
Besides the social services they rendered, the mosques also were involved in politics.
Burton (1894) observed how Sheikh Jami, Somali by origin and Alim (religious scholar) had
authority over the Amir. He was influential, due to his knowledge in religious science. His
influence could also be due to his marriage ties with one of the descendants of Sharif Yonis
mentioned above as the architect who came to Harar from Arabia to help in building the wall of
Harar. It was also recorded how the ulama (plural form of Alim) of Harar influenced Amir
Abdullahi (1885-1887) to fight Menelik despite his forces did not match that of Menelik’s
(Caulk, 1975).
Sometimes religious leaders might be the architects for the religious individuals to
assume power. The vision experienced by Yonis al-Arabia before Imam Ahmed took power is an
As I was sleeping one night, I suddenly saw in my dream the Prophet, peace and prayer be
upon him. Umar bin al-Khattab was standing to his right, Abu Bakr to his left, and Ali bin
Talib in front of him. And in front of Ali there stood Imam Ahmed ibn Ibrahim. And I asked
him (the Prophet): Oh Messenger of God, who is this man in front of Ali? And he, peace and
prayer be upon him, said: This is the man by whom God will bring peace and Islam
(yuslimu) to the land of the Habasha (Abdul-karim, 1995 p. 11).
36
Thus, the religious scholars either assumed power by themselves wherever that was
attainable, or they were king makers, or they paved the way for military-religious leaders to
assume power. Mosques were one of the institutions they used to achieve that goal. Mosques,
In ordinary life Muslims meet every week on Friday, not only for Juma Salat (Friday
prayer). They use that platform to exchange information on any events that happened in between
the two Fridays at the local level. They gather at the national level on Edil Fitr (the holy day
after the Ramadan). They meet at international level at Mecca on Edil Adaha or Arafa.
To discuss Jugal made of rough stones of granite and sandstone where clay was used as
mortar is vital (Burton, 1894). As it has been mentioned, the Jugal was built by Amir Nur (1552-
1567) to deter the pastoralist Oromos from destroying Harar. It encompasses bariyach, gey
garach, mosques, awach, etc. The awach will be discussed separately. The mosques in relation
to religious leaders and the social services they provided have already been discussed. The other
details of the Jugal and the materials it is made from, the bariyach (the gates) and the gey garach
The Jugal
Burton (1894) gave detailed narration of the Amirs’ palace, the roads, and houses. Kabir
Abdulmuheiman and kabir Abdullahi Adus assert that Hararis built the wall with their labor,
material and money organized through a social organization referred to as baha which will be
discussed in chapter seven. Whereas Burton (1894) described the wall as that which would
crumble at the touch of six-pounder, Ahmed Zekaria (1997) noted how “it helped Harar to
maintain the relative peace and security which allowed it to develop an urban culture, attracting
37
trade and religious learning.” (p. 18). For Klemm (2002) “it is rather a visual symbol of the
boundaries between the urban, Harari merchant society and the predominantly Oromo
pastoralists outside the wall” (p. 35). It can be added that it is the expression of splendid Harari
architectural culture.
The materials are stones collected from Aw Hakim Sere (Mt. Hakim on the West side of
Harar), or locally quarried untrimmed Hashi stone (Abdullahi Muhammad Ahmed, 1990), East
Africa Cordia, or large leafed Cordia or Sudan teak and clay. This goes along with Gleichen
(1898) who described the city “as a conglomeration of narrow and intricate streets leading
between houses built of loose stone or rubble and thatched with horizontal cross pieces covered
The wall encompasses 48 hectares with a circumference of 3,342 meters (Ahmed Zekaria
1997, p. 18) or, according to kabir Abdullahi Adus it is 6660 kuru.23 This is equal to the distance
Abdullahi Muhammad Ahmed (1990) described as kuru or cubit. He further informs that as
people were constructing the wall they were reciting verses from the Quran. A similar ritual was
followed in 1940’s when the crumbled Asmadin Bari was restored. While its height from the
ground is 12 feet on average, Burton (1894) estimated the wall to be one mile long and half that
breadth. As noted by Paulitschke (Hecht 1982) after it was rebuilt and fortified by the Egyptians
23
He said these numbers match the total numbers of verses in the Quran. July 8th 2013 interview
38
Bariyach (the Gates)
Following the five entrance gates24 the Jugal is divided into five quarters, (Waldron,
Two entrances were added by Menelik, Duck Bari25 in the West and Barabari Bari in
North West. While the former still exists the latter one was destroyed during Italian occupation
(Hecht 1982). Each quarter is further subdivided into toyach (neighborhoods). Waldron (1978)
There are holes referred to as waraba nodule (hyena hole, see figure 1) for the hyenas to
come into and go out from the city after the gates were locked as darkness fell. Harmsworth
(1935) observed, after dark, how “they creep through the holes in town walls to clean the
garbage thrown by the inhabitants” (p. 180). The holes are also sewers to discharge flood waters
and liquid waste materials from the city (personal observation). The passages for the people and
24
Ancient units of length from elbow to the tip of the middle finger. Elders say they reflect five pillars of Islam or
five times daily prayers
25
Named as Duck Ber by Haile Sellassie
39
Figure1: Waraba Nudul (hyena hole)
Badro Bari (Bedri Bari) Its name is related to the first battle the Prophet Muhammad had in 624
AD against the Quraysh. Consequently this gate was a venue to offer military training to Harari
youth and demonstrate their military skill in the presence of elders (Abdullahi Muhammad,
1990). According to Maftuh, (2002) this Bari was referred to as Alim Bari (Scholars’ gate),
Babble Hakim (entrepreneurs’ gate), and Jihad Bari. It was renovated by the Italians during their
five year occupation. Amharas call it Buda26 Ber probably for the presence of houses referred to
as tom to gar where farm implements, pots, tools and ornaments were produced and marketed
(Nicholl, 1997).
26
People who were suspected to be with evil eyes. Traditionally it is related to those who professionally produce
farm implements, pots, tools, and ornaments.
40
Figure 2: Badro Bari (Bedri Bari)
Asmadin Bari This gate was used as an exit by Islamic scholars to teach Islam to surrounding
people (Maftuh, 2000). Traditionally it is believed that Aw Abadir and his disciples were residing
in the vicinity of this gate. While according to Hecht’s (1982a) account this Bari was restored by
the Italians, Maftuh, (2000) says Egyptians renovated this gate during their 10 year occupation
and named it as Babine Nesre, victory gate or Babb el Turk (Felix Rosen in Hecht, 1982a) .On
the other hand, Nicholl (1997) writes the name of this gate as Babb el Nasri and translates it as
the Gate of Christians. Moreover, he attributes the renovation to the Turkish and notes this gate
as the entry-point for produce from the Abyssinians. While Burton (1894) named it as
41
Hameressa Bari after a river that flows just outside the gate, the Amharas call it Shawa Bar for it
Assum Bari The name as Maftuh, (2000) stated, was probably, derived from either a river that
was just outside the gate or a salt market in front of the gate. Abdullahi Mohammed Ahmed
(1990) also pointed out the existence of a creed that was mentioned in one of the Harari songs as
garzina magbazina Argo Bari mescha mieyzina Assum Bari, meaning our dwelling place is Argo
Bari, whereas our drinking water is from Assum Bari. Other names are qibla Bari for it is
towards Kaaba and Masjid Bari, for there is a great number of mosques including the grand
42
mosque27. People name it as Amir Nur Bari for the presence of Amir Nur Mosque and Shrine. As
noted by Nicholl (1997) it was referred to as Zayla Bari for it was a passage for merchants to
Zayla. It was also referred to as (Assum) Axum Bari to indicate either the direction where Axum
is or merchants from Axum were coming, both indicating the long relation Harar had had with
Axum. Nicholl (1997) further tells us that this gate is once known as Babb el F’touh, the gate of
conquest, for it is believed that Imam Ahmed bin Ibrahim left Harar through this gate when he
27
Personal observation
43
Argoba Bari This is the gate Burton (1894) passed through in 1885 to enter Harar. It is called
Argoba Bari for the Argoba villages are not far away from the gate, or, as noted by Emran
(2006) for the Argobas, fleeing the attack in 1415 by Negus Ishaq, took refuge in Harar and
settled in the vicinity of this gate. Other names are Eid Bari, for the two Muslim festivals were
celebrated on the plain called Aw Abdal just outside the gate28. Ud Bari and Sahel Bari are other
names given to this gate. While the former name is given as one would find just outside the gate
a small filed where crops were threshed, the latter name is given for, in the olden times, the gate
led to Berberah.
28
Personal experience
44
Sukutat Bari the researcher remembers that this gate used to lead to fields where there were
crops, fruits, and vegetables farms. Burton (1894) named it Besidimo gate for it leads to
Besidimo town few kilometers far away from Harar. The gate also leads to Sofi Shrine. Thus,
while especially the Oromos name it Kara Sofi, (a road that leads to Sofi) (Maftuh, 2000, p. 48)
the Amharas refer to it as Senga Ber, the gate of Bulls, for this gate leads up to the cattle-plains
Each gate’s name, as it has just been seen, was related to either some incident that happened in
the history of Islam, or to scholars, entrepreneurs, the Harari trade partners or victories scored by
the Hararis. Rivers that existed immediately outside each gate did not basically serve as sources
of the gates’ names. Thus, Ginella River was the river one would come across in front of
45
Asmadin Bari. While river Khatibin was flowing in front of Badro Bari, rivers birmengui, toma
zer and berbere zer were flowing in front of Sukutat Bari, Argoba Bari and Assum Bari
respectively. As it has just been seen while Hararis related the creek outside Assume Bari with its
name, Burton (1894) related Asmadin Bari to the river in its vicinity, i.e. Hameressa River.
Burton (1894) observed that those gates were at all times carefully guarded. In the
evening the keys were taken by qulfi guita29 to the Amir so that no one could leave the city till
dawn. This practice had continued during Menelik’s (Gleichen, 1897) and Haile Selassie’s
periods (Harmsworth 1935). Anybody who was found outside their house once darkness fell
Gey Garach
The most impressive venue where Hararis teach and learn their values are gey garach,
whose architectural form is typical, specific and original, different from the domestic layout
usually known in Muslim countries, and their style is unique in Ethiopia and their interior design
quite exceptional. That seems the reason whenever Hararis discuss their culture they mention the
beauty of their houses, of which they are very proud. It is the first venue where parents as the
first teachers educate their children by living examples of what is just and unjust, what is fine
It is, therefore, imperative to briefly discuss gey gar for they express the beliefs and
culture as well as traditional architects of Hararis; they tell the history and way of life of the
Hararis; they are the first schools where Hararis learn about symbolic values which regulate the
relations members of families have with each other, with their toya, neighbors, Bari and then the
29
Qulfi guita was master of the key who was in charge of the key of the gate and accountable directly to the Amir.
46
Each Bari, as it is mentioned above, is divided into neighbors (toyach) that contain gey
garach (houses of the city) with either common or single compounds (gara abaat). Toya is
formed from gara ganbriyach (many families within many compounds). Or, as narrated by
Kabir Abdulmuheiman, the sequence is: gar, a family; gara-abaat, a number of families within
one compound sharing one common main gate; gara gambari, families within one big compound
but with different gates; Toya, neighborhoods from which Bari is formed.
Gey garach are discussed in detail by Hecht (1982a). She used detailed observations and
reports made by travelers such as Burton (1894) and Paulitschke (1888) in Hecht (1982a) who
visited Harar with an interval of 30 years. She also discussed observations of other travelers such
as Bardey, Robecchi-Bricchetti, Vivian, Skinner, Rosen and Comyn-Platt, who visited Harar
within a life span of forty to eighty years. Such an approach enables one to appreciate the
changes gey garach went through. Moreover, as she mentioned in her foot note, she made
personal studies and observations as well as held personal interviews with people, both Hararis
and scholars, who are knowledgeable about Harari society while staying in Harar. Hence, she
brought together the past and the present traveling through time and broadens the understanding
one could have of the gey gar. Nevertheless, her discussion is more focused on the splendid art
of gey gar. Hence, it is important to briefly discuss the social aspects of gey gar.
VO Van (2007), supporting his narration on gey gar with colorful pictures, depicts what
contemporary gey garach look like. He also tried to attach meanings to some parts of gey gar.
Hence, using their articles and descriptions, this part will highlight those and additional
47
Figure 7: gey gar
Kabir Abdulmuheiman stated,30 gey gar as any other social phenomenon, had passed through
various developmental stages before it acquired its present shape. The first type of dwellings
were made of wantef (carpet) followed by houses totally built from grasses. Then those houses
were improved when their walls were built from stones while their roofs were covered with
thatch. Finally, rectangular houses built entirely with stones emerged as gey gar.
Six challas (rows) of granite rocks are buried as a basement or foundation to the walls.
Above the foundation the rows are reduced to four, which continues till the wall attains a certain
height. The rows are further reduced to two when the walls approach the upper limit. To hold the
walls together and support the roofs two makhazu (pillars) are erected. The first one is erected
30
June 12, 2013 interview in Harar
48
near waram moreja (place to keep spear) while the second one is erected near tit nadaba and
qachine nadaba. These two pillars support the beam called hamil that in turn supports the roof.
After erecting the walls and keeping the hamil in place, the roof is first covered with
wooden logs called Derbi inchi, “thin tree trunks stripped of their bark” (Hecht, 1982a, p. 5)
which are kept apart leaving a small space between two trunks to resist a small earth quick. 31
Another type of wood called kabal is put on top of Derbi inchi. Then the kabal is covered with
thatch. The thatch is covered with mud and finally cemented with a type of soil called guguba
The waram moreja32 makhazu, on top of supporting the roof, divides the gidir gar into
two: the first partition contains Amir Nadaba, gidir nadaba, sutri nadaba, tit or wej nadaba,
gabti ehair nadaba, qachin nadaba and taqet, the niches. Kirtet, dera, qutti qala, and qala are in
the second partition. Or, it could be classified into stories. While the first story comprises gidir
gar, kirtet and dera, the qala and qutti qala are the constituent parts of the second story.
Every part of each story has its own function. Kirtet, for instance is a place where a
mother who gives birth spends 40 days with her new born baby. This time Kirtet is called haras
gar. It is also a room for circumcision. It is a honeymoon room (aroz gar) for newly married
couples. It is also a place where women stay when men are in the gidir gar engaging in various
activities such as meeting, reading Quran, entertaining friends, etc. It is a sleeping place for the
wife and accommodates her traditional dressing table. Hence kirtet is a venue where new life of a
couple and a new born child starts. The custody of this room is the responsibility of Harari
induchach who are honored with a privilege in the society as guardians of a place where life
31
Information from Khalid Abdurrahman ,an engineer from Addis Ababa University
32
Waram moreja was a place to keep a spear. If the head was upward it was a symbol of peace and if it was kept
downward it was indication of war situation.
49
This room in olden times was a manifestation of status, for houses with two kirtets were
said to be traditionally Amir Garach gar (Houses of Amir families). In Recent times, wealthy
individuals as well used to have houses with two kirtets. For instance, the late Aw Ahmed
Abogn, who was the treasurer of Ras Makonen and then his son Ras Tafari, built and owned a
Adjacent to kirtet is a place, where the black long-necked pottery containers, aflaal with
elongated basketry lids, aflaal Offa, up to four in number are kept. They are used for storage of
the families’ jewelry and valuables or gifts received by the bride either from the groom or her
parents. They are also used to store the umbilical cords of children in the family if birth takes
place at home. Thus, the aflaal and Offa symbolize, on top of acknowledging and sharing of
happiness of the new couples, the attainment of personality by the newly born child. As Fethia
Ahmed34 mentioned, if the aflaal Offa are turned down they symbolize the death of a husband
and the presence of a widow in that house. Hence, the relations individuals could have with the
widow or her children are governed differently from those of the households where both parents
are alive.
Immediately upon passing the entrance of the kirtet one finds a room called dera with a
door. Whenever the kirtet serves as haras gar or aroz gar, the dera is used as rest room for the
harasit (women who gives birth) or arozit (bride). For this reason the dera is built with Hashiun
(sedimentary rock with pores) that allows ventilation. The rocks are not cemented to enable the
wall to suck out any pleasant or unpleasant odor and release it outside. It also serves as a
secluded room where the husband and the wife, avoiding their children, settle their differences.
33
Personal observation
34
The curator of Harari cultural museum; June 21st 2013 interview in Harar
50
Children are obliged to fast during Ramadan only when they attain seven. Nevertheless,
they practice fasting starting from three years eating in dera to avoid eating and drinking
publicly. This is called dera soman (dera fasting). After four years of dera soman practice they
start fasting the whole day like adults. Hence, dera is a private venue both for the parents and
children.
The interior of the gidir gar (large living room) also encompasses different parts. One
part is nadabach with various elevations.35 They are divided into five. 36 Their naming depends
on the social services they provide, their location, and size. Amir Nadaba in the old days was a
seat of the Amir. It was a seat for the kabir while teaching Islam. In aspiring this for its son a
family buries beneath this nadaba the foreskin of the penis after circumcision. 37 In ordinary
family life, it is a seat where the master of the house is seated. Subsequently, the Hararis say kulu
zum garzube Amirin ta; meaning everyone is Amir at his home. Amir Nadaba is, therefore, a
Amir Nadaba is placed at the right or left side of the gidir gar “in such a way that the
master of the house sees who enters the compound and acts accordingly. Hence, this nadaba is at
the vantage point to enable the head of the family to have control of the compound. For all these
reasons, the location of Amir Nadaba in gey gar is at a commanding position. One who sits there
Gidir nadaba, big nadaba, is situated by the main wall opposite to the entrance. It is
referred to as gidir for it is the largest in size from the other four nadabach. It is also socially
different from other nadabach, as will be seen in chapter five, as those who are senior in
35
Personal observation
36
There are six if qachin nadaba where chat qulo, calabash for water is kept is included. Interview held with Fethia
Ahmed, June 21, 2013.
37
This point is discussed in chapter four
51
knowledge are seated in that nadaba when people gather for various festivities and to say their
sad farewell to the deceased, etc. It was the seat where dignitaries sat during the Amirs’ time. It
As any other Nadabach, gidir nadaba is built with impacted soil. Hence, when any
family member dies a hole is dug in gidir nadaba to collect the water used to wash the corpse
before it is wrapped and taken for burial. Then the hole is covered with the soil that is dug out.
Therefore, gidir nadaba symbolizes the ending of personality as aflaal symbolizes the beginning
of personality. Furthermore, keeping the corpse on gidir nadaba, where under normal
circumstances elders and dignitaries sit, reflects the respect the Hararis have for a deceased
person.
malasay nadaba as the guards of the Amir sat while the Amir adjudicated a criminal or civil case
or led a meeting. Now it is a seat where the husband rests when he returns home. Sometimes
Quran illiterate but wealthy individuals sit there to cover up their illiteracy. The protection is
The fourth nadaba is tit nadaba or wej nadaba below the gidir nadaba. It is smaller than
gidir nadaba and also seated by juniors. Or as it is stated by VO Van (2007) “it is for the young
ones” (p. 7). It is also a place where children sleep at night. Otherwise it is larger in size than the
remaining three nadabach including Amir Nadaba. As narrated by kabir Abdulmuheiman in the
Amirs’ time a complainant or an accused sat on tit nadaba while complaining to the Amir or
defending himself or someone else. Another very narrow nadaba opposite to Amir Nadaba is
chat qulu nadaba where calabash is kept. It is also called Qachin Nadaba.
52
Gabti ehair nadaba is the fifth nadaba. Its name is derived from its location, i.e. behind
the door, gabti. It was a seat for those who opposed the idea that was the subject of discussion in
a meeting led by the Amir as told by Kabir Abdulmuheiman38. These days it is a place for those
who are seriously ill and it is referred to as mutt nadaba (a seat for dying). Above this and sutri
nadaba is over hanged a kind of inward balcony made with wood to place luggage. It is called
marabraba. In aada gar the traditional luggage, referred to as eraz mu-die is kept over
marabraba.
While the visible parts of the nadaba are painted, the remaining parts, especially the
upper parts, are “covered with mats either purchased from Somalia or brought from Mecca”
(Hetch, 1982a, p. 5). The former one is inferior in quality compared to the latter one. Hence, the
mats symbolize hierarchy in Harari community. Moreover, the mats from Mecca probably could
be an indication that the master of the house either has made pilgrimage to Mecca or a near
Nadabach, therefore, provide various services. They serve as meeting places for social
institutions such as afocha, muggad, jamaa. They are places to observe festivities such as
marriage, mawlid and graduation. Afocha and jamaa members gather on nadaba to express their
commiseration. They are meeting places for family members and family councils. They are
places where the family offers hospitality to its guest. They are also places where education is
offered. They are places where a deceased is purified. Hence, by being venues of various
services they regulate various relations among family and community members.
Another constituent part of gey gar is taqet, niches where family members keep their
belongings. The biggest one is nadaba dera, a built-in closet located opposite to sutri nadaba. It
has two partitions: the upper part where the master of the house keeps his clothes and the lower
38
June 12, 2013 interview in Harar
53
part where cash and other items such as “documents of importance are kept” (Hecht, 1982a, p.
5). On the wall that faces the entrance three or five taqetach (niches) are placed. While one or
three taqetach are placed on the top part of the wall the other two are placed beneath those
taqetach.
Whereas the upper taqetach are referred to as tili taqet (nook of the hawk) the lower two
are called eqed taqet, (front niches) used to keep books. These days they are used to keep
porcelains. Probably the former one is named after a hawk as its triangular shape resembles the
front body part of the hawk seated on a tree. Or probably it is named after a hawk as noted by
Leslau (1963), because it is so high that only the hawk can reach it. Items are kept away from
children by placing them in the tili taqet. This last identification of the taqet with the hawk goes
along with what mothers say to stop their children from continually requesting meat. They say
‘tili talafta’ alas the hawk has snatched it, there is no hope to recover it. These children,
however, have their own taqet called wej taqet where they keep their belongings such as Luh,39
According to Fethia Ahmed40 the master of the house places items of his immediate need
at Amir Nadaba taqet or dildila taqet. The key of the gidir gar gambari, the main door of the
house, is also kept there. Perhaps, this practice is adopted from the old tradition where keys of
the five gates of the Jugal, after being locked by qulfi goyta, were handed over to the Amir who
39
A flat wooden slate used as white board for a kabir who teaches Quran in Quran gey and for hand writing for
students. This point is discussed in chapter 5.
40
Interview held with Fethia Ahmed, June 21, 2013.
54
In old days Hararis placed lamps at Mekhtut moreja taqet (a niche for a lamp) to
illuminate their rooms. Its elevation in the gidir gar enabled the lamp to illuminate all spaces.
Nowadays that place is used to place TV so that everybody in the room can watch without any
The third part of gey gar is qala (upstairs). It is located above kirtet and dera. This qala is
divided according to kabir Abdulmuheiman41 into qala proper and qutti qala. Both qalach
(plural of qala) share a common ceiling with gidir gar with similar height. In many gey garach
the qala and the gidir gar are separated by a screen of pierced wood work.42 In old days when
Hararis were farmers the qala was used to store hay, food stuff and qutti, i.e. leaves of coffee
Moreover, it was used to store merchandise to be exported. It reflected the transition the
Hararis made from farming to trade for it was from that store that merchandise was sold to the
abbans who exported the items to Berberah and Zeila. The qala was, therefore, a place where
Hararis were connected with the external world through international trade.43 These days, since
Some parts in gey gar have a religious message. For instance, the two eqed taqetach
symbolize graves as the rectangular shape resembles Muslim graves. As it has been already
mentioned gidir nadaba was a place where a hole was made to bury the water used to purify the
body and the spirit of the deceased. Furthermore, the banisters of the staircase, says kabir
41
June 12, 2013 interview in Harar
42
Personal observation
43
This point is discussed in chapter six
44
June 12, 2013 interview in Harar
55
Incense and incense burning play an important role in the life of Hararis. 45 Thus, there is
a taqet where an incense burner is kept. It is beneath a waram moreja. Hararis take their shoes
off when they step on the nadaba. They keep or place these shoes, especially at night, in a taqet
called ashen murad taqet (niche to keep shoes). This taqet is most of the time built either under
the stairs that lead to the qala or beneath gabti ehair nadaba.
It is already mentioned that gey gar is supported with a pillar called maxazu. Attached to
this maxazu are found two rectangular-shaped facing each other from up to down with almost
spear-size distance. These fittings were used to keep spears. These spear holders as part of gey
gar demonstrate that Hararis were always ready to defend their family or city whenever a need
arose. For this purpose, it was obligatory for every male student to attend military training
Entering the gidir gar, if one sits on tit nadaba facing the gambari (door to gidir gar),
one observes moderate size tree trunks inserted into the wall above the entrance door. They are
called wantef murad (wood to place carpets). The number of carpets placed on that shelf
symbolizes the number of girls in that family ready for marriage. The carpet is the one that the
bride covers her gidir nadaba with at her home. Moreover, the numbers of these pieces of woods
are odd. Traditionally, Hararis made the numbers odd to remind themselves this world is always
incomplete, for one dies before completing his wishes. Otherwise life would have been boring if
it were complete. Horizontal to wantef moreja one piece of wood different in size and shape is
inserted to the wall. It is called shengi mesqaya (a wood to hang seeds to be planted next year).
In the abaat, a compound of gey gar, separate from the gidir gar there is always a tit gar
(small room). It has its own window, entrance door and nadaba. It is supplement to gidir gar. A
45
This point is discussed in chapter four
46
This point is discussed in Chapter five
56
room is also built by young members of the family at the beginning of each Ramadan month and
brought down at the end of the Ramadan till the room meets the standard of tit gar.47 If the
compound belongs to a kabir there is a place called Saar gar (a small veranda covered with
grasses) where he teaches without affecting the privacy of his family. Another name for Saar gar
is gimbi gar. There are separate places for a toilet and a kitchen called wesamoy and alawada
respectively.
Most of gidir gar gambari (door) faces east or westward. Kabir Abdulmuheiman48
pointed out that most of the garach facing eastward belonged to farmers and merchants so that
they could arise in the early morning and go to their business. It is very rare to find doors facing
south or north. If it faces south one cannot watch who is entering the compound while one is
offering Salat facing north. On the other hand, if the door faces north those who would like to
Gey gar compound is called abaat. It is surrounded by a wall made from stone and clay.
Depending on the space available or other factors a single family or several families could live in
a compound. If the compound is shared by many families it is most likely that they use a
common kitchen and toilet. “Extremely codified, the use of these spaces reflects an important
part of social life” (VO Van, 2007, p. 16). This relation is referred to as Gara Abaat by Hararis,
common wall. “In such cases the compounds within the block are again separated by walls. Then
a visitor to the second compound, when entering from the lane has to pass through uga
48
June 12, 2013 interview in Harar
49
June 12, 2013 interview in Harar
57
katambari, the outer gate and cross the first compound before coming to the second one” (Hecht,
Kabir Abdulmuheiman50.
Awach
Here the discussion is about those Awach who are respected for saving the city and its
people from natural and manmade catastrophe, protecting it from invasions, and playing a
unifying role in the history of Hararis. Also, mention is made of responsibilities of some of the
Awach.
Hararis utilize Awach (Plural form of Aw, father) to designate shrines. When they refer to
the holy individual related to the shrine they use Aw. Aw Abadir,51 Aw Kelka, etc. are some
examples. Sometimes they use Sheik as Sheik Hussein. Rarely do they use Amir, for instance
Amir Nur. The Awach, however, are not only named after male Aw. They are also named after
holy women with a title Ai, (mother). Ai Abida is one example. Sometimes they use umma,
(grandmother) for instance umma koda believed to be the mother of Aw Abdul Qadir. The Awach
are not only Hararis, they are from Somalis, Oromos, and Arabs as well. Besides, they are
located in the Jugal, its vicinity and far away from Harar as far as Bale where sheik Hussein’s
shrine is located.
The Awach have division of duties that one can observe from a ritual called misti-jab,
observed immediately after the Mehkrib azan (call for Salat following the sunset). My late
mother, Fatimah Mohammad, after the azan putting incense in incense’s burner used to say:
50
June 12, 2013 interview in Harar
51
On the display on the wall behind the seat where the current murid sits and receives visitors the name of Aw
Abadir is written in Arabic preceded by Sheikh. (Personal observation)
58
Bad zalu, Aw Abadir
;
Bari zalu Amir Abdul-Qadir;
She would complete her Mistijab by requesting Allah to protect all those dead and alive
souls, living in the country and abroad, from evil spirits. The rough translation is:
52
Sugud is a porringer shaped with hatchet and used by Hararis to measure sorghum they give to the needy. It holds
2.5 kg. It is also called fitri gabata.
53
Aqara is chat wrapped leaf.
59
Fethia Ahmed54 informed me there was a lady who used to recall over two hundred souls
both alive and dead and request the Awach to protect them. Mistijab is also a ritual, gey
induchach use for self-assessment of the daytime activities focusing their attention to Allah and
According to the folklore, this is a division of responsibilities among some of the Awach.
Due to time and space constraints it would be difficult, if not impossible, to discuss only how
this division of responsibility came about. However, something could be said about how Aw
Abdul Qadir ended up as the guardian of the gates as it is told by kabir Abdulmuheiman. 55
Mohammed, the Prophet, in his "Mi 'raj," his nocturnal ascension to paradise, saw a very
luminous spot shining from the earth. He then asked the angel Gabriel (Jibril) what this spot was.
Jibril replied the light was coming from the "Mount of the Saints," "Jebel all Awliya” i.e. Harar.
Upon his arrival on earth completing his journey, his companion Abubaker requested to be the
guardian of that luminous spot the Prophet saw from the paradise. The Prophet replied: you
would not be the guardian of that city; it belonged to your 17 th descendant. Aw Abadir is the 17th
descendant of Abubaker and that seems the reason he is designated as Bad zalu Aw Abadir.
The spirit of Aw Abdul Qadir Jailan who attended that conversation asked the Prophet
“Oh! Grandfather since you used my shoulders as a launch pad when you ascended to the heaven
as a reward you have to let me share some responsibility over that city.” The Prophet then let
Abdul Qadir be the guardian of the gates. Aw Abdul Qadir is, therefore, always referred to by the
Hararis as Bari zalu, owner of the gates. That seems to be the reason why the shrine of Aw
Abadir is inside the Jugal while the shrine of Aw Abdu Qadir is located outside the wall. Some
say while Aw Abadir is localized Aw Abdul Qadir is not. No wonder, therefore, if Hararis believe
54
Interview held June 21, 2013
55
Interview on 6/5/2013 in Harar
60
their city is a chosen city by the Prophet Muhammad and protected by Awliya which they utilize
Abadir” (p. 2). Aw Abadir was the one who offered leadership to organize and settle Hararis or
their ancestors Haralas when they faced severe drought and famine at one time in their history.
This is probably the reason why, when summer rains are delayed and signs of draught appear, the
Oromos and Hararis march through the city holding green leaves uttering “Maganey Megan Aw
Abadrow Megan Abd el Kader raw Megan” which means salvation in the name of Aw Abadir
and Aw Abdul Qadir. Where affordable they slaughter sacrifices. Even the Christian Amharas in
Harar count on Aw Abadir saying ‘Abadir tom ayasadir’ which means Abadir never let you fall
hungry.
According to Kabir Abdullahi Muhammad56 and as noted by Ahmed Zekaria (2003) the
inauguration of the Amirs of Harar referred to as taj mored meaning ‘to crown the amir’ and
tying turbans for higher officials referred to as imamate metalel were always held at Aw Abadir’s
awach. While the first act is an indication of how Aw Abadir and Abd el Kader plucked Hararis
(Haralas) from danger, the coronation at Aw Abadir awach could be acknowledging and
Amir Nur is regarded as another leader who offered spiritual and administrative
leadership. He was the one who built the wall that surrounded the city and saved it from external
attack through the spiritual connection he had with the Khadir. Ai Abida is a holy woman
56
Interview on February 6th , 2o13 in Harar
61
regarded as the mother of all Hararis. Hence, a bride with her mother and friends visit with gifts
while preparing for her marriage ceremonies and when she gives birth to her first child.57
To protect the city and its people from attacks that could come from different sources Hararis
disseminated among people living in the surrounding areas the idea that they are descendants of
the 43 holy men who came with Aw Abadir from Arabia. For instance, when the Mogadishu
government invaded Ethiopia, they launched a massive attack on Dire Dawa by passing Harar.
One of the leading officers who led the attack explains why they adopted that course. He gives
two reasons. One was the strategic importance of Dire Dawa, i.e. presence of the airport, the rail
57
This point is discussed in chapter four
62
road and industries. The second reason was they planned to enter Harar peacefully which would
have averted the anger of the Awach who watched over Harar and its people. Otherwise, it would
be suicidal to attack madintul Awliya that he still believes is protected by the awach.
On the other hand, awach are playing a unifying role among Hararis, Oromos, Somalis
and even Amharas. Among 43 holy men who came from Arabia only Aw Abadir settled in the
walled city while others resided among the Oromos or Somalis. Second, “saints are said to
originate from all parts of the Muslim world” (Gibb, 1999, p. 96). Therefore it is the miracles
they performed not their qabila, nationality that matters. Hence, Hararis use the awach as
integrative factors to smooth the relations they have had with the surrounding people.
Before winding up this part it is worthy to note a few points how Hararis use awach to
recruit members from non-Hararis. An important observation that could be mentioned is where
the researcher accompanied, on 28 th September 2013, two gey induchach on their visit to Ai
Abida and observed the ritual held to bless the coming marriage ceremony. The lady murid is Ai
Amina Muhammad. Except for the two visitors and the murid the others who attended the ritual
conducted in Harari language and gey aada were Oromo ladies who were perfect in using the
Another occasion worth mentioning is that a group of induchach on March 03, 2010
celebrating Aw Hamid Awach on the road that goes to Asmadin Bari. Harari language was the
medium to conduct the ceremony, though Oromo ladies were present who were perfect in using
the language of the ceremony. Similarly, the researcher accompanied the visit made on June 20,
2013 to Aw Abadir by Salihin KG students on their graduation ceremony; it was also conducted
in Harari language though there were Oromo and Somali students, but who still understood the
ceremony.
63
From what has been said it is plausible to conclude that awach are one of the institutions
Hararis have been using to teach gey aada and Harari language to turn non-Hararis into Hararis.
Thus, one may say awach are institutions where Hararis are replenishing themselves and
perpetuate as a community. Hence, they are institutions where Hararis use to develop and
64
The Amirs Of Harar
As has already been discussed, the administration of Harar was not limited to the walled
city and its vicinity. Nicholl (1997) broadens its rule to include a large and fertile province,
Hararghe, and its peaceable agricultural inhabitants. The Amirs were 72 (Wagner 1974) or 76
number, however, could be more than this. Volumes of books, therefore, would be required to
tell about the chronicles of these Amirs which are beyond the scope of this paper. Hence, this
part is limited to those Amirs who made a difference in the political, economic, social or legal
life of Hararis. These Amirs are Imam Ahmed bin Ibrahim, Amir Nur, Amir Uthman Al-Habash,
Allegations of burning and blundering churches and monasteries, slaying without mercy
every male that fell in his way, and driving off the women and children, selling some to strange
slavery has always been made by some historians against Imam Ahmed ibn Ibrahim. He was
portrayed by Burton (1894) sometimes as Attila of Adal and other times as an African Hero who
dashed to pieces the Abyssinian structure of 2500 years. But the other side of the coin reflects
what was done to the lowlanders and their leader before Imam Ahmed ibn Ibrahim undertook
የሆነ ሆኖ ማህፉዝ ሞቶ ሱልጣን መሐመድም ሸሸቶ እሰላሞቹ ከተሸነፉ በኋላ የክርሰትያኑ ጦር እሰከ አዳሎቹ
ከተማ እሰከ ዘከር (ደከር) ደርሶ የማህፉዝን ከተማ አቃጥሎ ያገኘውን ዘርፎ ሠራዊቱ በደሰታ ንጉሰ ነገሥቱን
58
Interview on 22nd June, 2012 in Harar
65
My translation
After the defeat of the Muslims following the death of Mahfouz and the flight of Sultan
Muhammad, the Christian army penetrated deep into the territories of Muslims and
returned accompanying its king leaving behind the city of Mahfouz Dakar, and other
Muslim cities which it had put into ashes after looting. (Tekle Tsaddik Makuria, 1968
GC)
Furthermore,
እንደ እውነቱ ከሆነ በነ ዐፄ ዓምድ ፅዮንና በነ ዓፄ ዘረያቆብ ጊዜ ክርሰቲያኖች ወደ አዳልና ሶማሌ አገር ባለባቱ
ሸፍቶ ለዘመቻ በሄዱ ጊዜ ይህንኑ የመሰለ ግፍ በተማረከው እሰላም በቤተሰቡም ላይ መሰራታቸው፤ መሰጊዱንም
መንደሩንም ማቃጠላቸው የታወቀ ነው፤ሲዋጋ በሞተው ተይዞ በተማረከው የእሰላም መሪ ላይ ግፈኛ አገዳደል
አካሉን መለያ ላይ እየቆራረጡ ለየአድባራቱ የላኩትን ማሰታወሱ ይበቃል (እላይ የተጠቀሰው ገፅ 291)
Translation
It is public that similar atrocities were carried on against those Muslims who were caught
while fighting and their families by Christians during the reign of Atse Amda Sion and
Atse Zara Yakub who burnt the Mosques and villages when the Adal and Somali chiefs
rebelled against them. The great atrocity they committed against those who were caught
or killed while fighting was unbelievable. It suffices to recall the act of Atse Zara Yakub
who distributed the limbs and other body parts of Muhammad Bedaly to monasteries
59
Ibid , 291
66
The following is taken from a letter written by Amda Sion to his rivalry, Sultan Saber
Adin:
ከአገሬ በተነሳሁ በሁለተኛው ቀን ከሰባት ፈረሰኞች ጋር ወደ ከተማ ገባሁኝ፡፡…ከዚያ በኃላ የተቀሩ ወታደሮቼ
ደርሰው የይፋትን ምድር ፈፅመው አጠፉት፡፡ እኔም ከዚያ አገር እንደ አሸዋ የበዛ ወርቅ፤ ብርና ነሓሰ ከብዙ
ሚባሉ የእሰላም አገሮች በሙሉ ሰደድኩ፡፡ እነርሱም በእነዚህ አገሮች ሁሉ ጦርነት አካሄዱ፡፡ ሰዎችን በሰይፍ
My translation
I entered a town with seven cavalries on the second day of my departure from my
country. Then upon their arrival my reserve armies completely destroyed Ifat. I took
abundant gold, silver and bronze with ample clothes from that country. Then I sent my
soldiers to the remaining Muslim countries. They waged war in those countries. They
killed people with swords. They burnt down big and glorious Muslim cities. Besides, they
drove off uncountable domestic animals and humans. (Lapiso Delebo, 1990, pp. 107-
108). And Burton (1894) described this, saying that “the Abyssinians were commanded
to spare nothing that drew the breath of life: to fulfill a prophecy which foretold the fall
Killing, driving women and children into slavery, burning religious places without
discrimination and looting properties of the loser by the winner have been ugly consequences of
all wars in history. These were mechanisms the leaders used to stimulate their army to engage in
fighting. Moreover, wars could be waged to control resources and trade routes or settle old
scores. Del Wanbara, Amir Mahfouz’s daughter, used Imam Ahmad, her husband, to kill the
monk Gabriel, who had killed her father as a soldier of tried velour. She also used Amir Nur
67
Mujahidin to Kill Galaudius, whom she thought was a main player actor in the killing of her
War could also be used to contain the enemy within its boundary or take the war into its
territory. War could be waged to smash state institutions in this case, churches and mosques as
one branch of government that propagated war and hatred. Hence, the cause for Imam Ahmad
ibn Ibrahim’s war against Abyssinians could be any combination of these experiences. It is
probably wrong, therefore, to limit the cause for Imam Ahmad’s war against the Abyssinians to
jihad. What is equally important about that war as pointed out by Cerulli (1936) was the mass
movement of people from both sides including mass conversions from one belief to another. The
contact Harar had with the Muslim world and the contact the Abyssinia had with the Christian
world had intensified. Consequently, there was probably exchange and development of new
values. The values of Hararis were probably influenced by other values as their values were
Galaudius, after defeating Imam Ahmad, could not conquer Harar. Neither Amir Nur
completely occupied Abyssinia again as his predecessor. Rather, the exhaustion with the
protracted wars of both sides made it easy for the Oromo pastoralists to penetrate and occupy
territories that were a bone of contention for both parties (Hecht, 1992). Harar and its people
were saved from that wave by a wall built by Amir Nur (Ahmed, 1997).
The effects of the occupation of those territories by the Oromo pastoralists were multi-
dimensional. As mentioned by Ahmed the Oromos over-ran many cities which were probably
satellites of Harar either eliminating the people or adopting them. While doing that the Oromos
introduced and or received new values. Harar, isolated from its vassals, was preoccupied with
68
surviving that wave. It continued to be "the seat for an Amirate which, although small in size,
was noted as a center of trade and Islamic learning in the horn of Africa" (Abir, 1968). Basically,
Harar to continue as a city state preferred trade and religion to waging war. That change in
As his name indicates he was from Habash (Abyssinia) and perhaps brought to Harar as a
slave or captive of war and possibly freed himself from slavery through negotiation or
exceptional talent he revealed. He, therefore, served as Wazir (chief minister) during the time of
Amir Nur. How he became the Amir of Harar is obscure, for some say he was designated by
Amir Nur (Cerulli, 1936) while some (Kabir Abdulmuheiman) 60 say he seized the throne through
a coup d’état. In whatever way he came to power, he preferred trade to war and negotiated with
the Oromos and saved Harar from being attacked. Amir Nur was, therefore, wise to appoint
Uthman as Wazir as he saw in him the potential to negotiate that was indispensable to drag Harar
As noted by Muhammad Hassan (1999) the agreement included allowing the Oromos to
buy goods in Harar for fixed prices while they sold their products at market price. On the other
hand, the Oromos allowed the caravans that came from and to Harar and sea and dry ports to
move freely in the Oromo territories. And they allowed the Amir’s soldiers to patrol the markets
and the caravan routes within the Oromo territories. Then Harar as a market served as a melting
60
Interview on 22nd June, 2012 in Harar
69
Amir Abd-Al Shakur (1783-1794)
Amir Abd al-Shakur while smoothing relations with the Oromos, he also undertook
structural reforms in his administration. As noted by Cerulli (Ahmed Zekaria, 1997) Amir Abd al
Shakur built a mosque at the holy place of Sheik Hussein of Bale which signifies the existence of
good relation between the Amir and Sheik Hussein. He reconstructed the Sijil (register) and
Diwan (chancery) (Wagner, 1974). Harar continued to prosper under Amir Abd- al-Shakur “due
to a trade boom in the Red Sea as mentioned by Ahmed Zekaria” (1997, p. 23).
Caulk (1977) informs that Amir Abd al-Shakur went probably with his Oromo friends to
the Jarso and other Nole clans, taking bales of sheeting for the first time to these Oromos in
order to deal in peace with them and free the way for salt and other caravans which must have
arrived through the Nole country. Cloth that was imported by the Hararis initially as a luxury,
turned into a necessity for the Oromos who replaced leather wrap with it. Thus, Muhammad
Hassen (1999) noted that through gift-giving Amir Abd al-Shakur ensured the safety of caravan
routes and the continuous flow of much needed goods for Harar to consume and export.
(1973) the richest Oromo chief. Since heads of his cattle were uncountable to express his
richness, in Oromo tradition ‘Rich as Mayu’ was a popular saying. Likewise, a Harari mother
who is bothered by her child’s unlimited material request would say to her child ‘ruhkha Amir
Abd al-Shakurin mesaltahk?’ ‘Oh! You are now acting as if you are Amir Abd al-Shakur’
Probably to foster the business and political relations those two rich men had, Amir Abd
al-Shakur took Ali, the son of Mayu to Harar where the latter went through the process of Ge
Lamad, ‘learning the city or the very life of its people and became gey usu or Harari’ (Gibb,
70
1997). That was crowned by the Amir by appointing Ali Mayu as chief commander of his army
and arranging marriage between him and Fatima, one of the relatives of the royal family
After receiving a good religious education and married to Khadijah, the daughter of Amir
attain that he became ilma gosa through adoption by the Oromos who helped him in the power
struggle against other claimants. In return he allowed the Oromo chiefs to come to Harar and be
hosted by the town people. Furthermore, he levied extra taxes called mahalaqa Oromo (Waldron,
1984) to pay his debts. He, thus, invited the Oromo dominance into the city which cost him his
life at the hands of the Egyptians who were invited by the Hararis to get rid of their ruler.
As one can see, the relationship between Hararis and the Oromos was complex. Most of
the time it was smooth and peaceful based on mutual interest. The Oromos left Harar from
destroying it, because it was a place where they sold their farm products and purchased those
either produced or imported by the Hararis. The Oromos were working as farmers on the lands of
the Hararis or lands distributed by the Amirs to their chiefs in return for protection of the trade
That dependency was further strengthened through marriage. For instance, after the death
of her son, Amir Ahmed (1852-1856), and the storming of Harar by the Oromos, Geesti Fatima,
to keep alive her influence and live in peace with Amir Muhammad and the Oromos, entered into
various marriage arrangements with the Amir. She allowed her daughter to marry the Amir’s son
and her grandson Yusuf to marry the Amir’s daughter. Finally, that relationship was culminated
when she concluded marriage with the Amir himself. On the other hand, he fostered his
relationship with the Oromos through adoption according to Oromo culture to become ilma gosa,
71
son of the clan. One can assume how Harari values had benefited and developed through all
Occupation Of Harar
Harar was occupied in its history by three forces. The first one was 10-year Egyptian
occupation followed by British for very a brief period and finally by Menelik. The British
occupation could be described as a transition from foreign occupation to freedom which was
brought to an end once and for all by the occupation of Menelik. The impacts those occupations
had on the political, social, and cultural life of Harar need further studies. This section simply is
Egyptian Occupation
What led Egypt to occupy Harar on 11 th October, 1875 was discussed by many scholars
such as E. S. Pankhurst (1958), Avishai Ben-Dorr (2008), and Caulk (1971; 1975). Here only
some of the measures Egyptians took following their occupation are discussed.
To achieve their intention of building an empire that stretched over both the greater Nile
basin and the African Red Sea coast, the Egyptians took various measures. As pointed out by
Avishai Ben-Dorr (2008) they executed the Harari symbol of sovereignty, i.e. the Amir. They
conducted massive expeditions against the neighboring tribes, i.e. Oromos and Somalis. (E.S.
Pankhurst, 1958). As an incentive, the Egyptians were allowed by one Rauf Pasha to acquire
lands, which were described by Avishai Ben-Dorr (2008) as long integrally connected to Harar,
its system and history, either by purchasing or concessions. Perhaps the Egyptians had a plan, by
concentrating all trade of the hinterlands in their hands, to weaken the Christian highlanders
72
To pursue their modernization plan, the Egyptians applied various methods, such as
scientific research, mapping, and surveying and introduced new construction, taxation, education
and legal systems (Avishai 2008). They organized the first bank in Eastern Africa, i.e. Egyptian
Bank in Harar. European traders and contingents of Greeks and Armenians came with the
Egyptian troops and ran their own small stores around the market places (Nicholl, 1997).
Nevertheless, as noted by E. S. Pankhurst (1958) the Egyptians, due to internal and external
factors, left Harar by handing over the administration to the British who took over not only Harar
The British flew their flag at their consulate situated at the home where the former
Egyptian Governor Raduan Pasha of Harar resided. They left after they trained local militias
from Hararis and Somalis and handed over the government of Harar to Amir Abdullahi, the son
of the deposed Amir Muhammad. He ruled Harar for only two years. He expelled foreign
merchants who had access to the city trade during the Egyptian rule. He also forbade alcohol and
even, as some reported, whole sale trade, referring to it as usury. He also sent an expedition
against Italians who came with the intention to carry on business in Harar. (E.S. Pankhurst,
1958) All of these added together gave the excuse to Europeans to close their eyes while Menelik
occupied Harar.
Menelik’s Occupation
Menelik prepared to occupy Harar while he was only king of Shawa. He occupied Harar
for the following reasons, but not by any means limited to: first, to acquire plenty of ammunition
and stores left behind at Harar by the Egyptian army on its evacuation on May 1885; second
Harar was one of the few areas in North East Africa which had developed commercial
agriculture based on the export of coffee, which would enable Menelik to pay for firearms from
73
Assab and Bay of Tajura after 1884; third, Harar possessed a custom house where there was a
regular cash supply (Caulk, 1971) Lastly, it could be added from what is noted by Dr. Teshale
Tibebe (1995) that Harar provided Menelik with skilled manpower his modern administration
badly required.
maneuvers, and preparations, and taking advantage of Emperor Yohannes’ occupation in fighting
the Mahdist, Menelik sent his army to the Southeast part of the country and subdued the Oromos
which enabled him to amass resources. He installed spies in Harar to inform him what was going
on after the Egyptians left. He even tried to extract information from the Catholic priest who was
residing in the city (Caulk, 1971). He also made muscle flexing by sending an advanced force led
by Dajazmac Walda Gebrel, who was routed out by an alliance of Hararis and Oromos
(Gleichen, 1898).
After making all these and other preparations, Menelik sent a message to Amir Abdullahi
requesting allegiance in return to put him as the governor of Harar. There are several versions
related to the response of Amir Abdullahi. Some say he turned down the offer based on the
advice given to him by the council of Ulama (scholars) who urged him to fight. There is a telling
also that the Amir proposed temporary payment of tribute to Menelik and then rebelled when the
time became ripe. As noted by Conti (Caulk, 1971) the people, however, rejected the proposal
The third account was the advice given by most trusted counselors to hand over the spoil
ammunitions to buy time. Nevertheless, according to kabir Abdullahi, an 81 year old Harari 61
the Amir rejected their advice with the retort: “I did not ask you how much power Menelik
possesses; I asked you a simple question, ‘will the book allow us to give up arms to a kafir.”
61
Interviewed by an art graduate , Abdullahi in 1968
74
Probably, this counselor was different from the council consisting of the ulama. And second, that
meeting possibly took place after the Amir had his meeting with the town people and the ulama.
Yusuf Berkhedle, who used to travel to Shawa as a merchant and had opportunity to
observe Menelik’s army, was one of those who advised the Amir not to fight. 62 As will be seen
soon, he also served as a negotiator representing Hararis after the defeat of the Amir. Some say
he was handpicked by Menelik himself for that negotiation.63 This may leave us to speculate that
Yusuf was probably a well-known merchant by Menelik or Menelik’s close advisers while
traveling to Shawa for business. That seems the reason why he was among those who advised the
Amir to avoid confrontation for the time being with Menelik, which the Amir ignored and went
in 1887 to Chelenko where Menelik defeated the thirty thousand Harari, Somali and Oromo
troops.
Eleven thousand deaths (Gleichen, 1898) were counted on the Harari side, including 700
recently-married Harari youth and 300 hafiz al Quran (Those who memorize the whole Quran).
The memory of the 700 newlywed martyrs is retained in Harari wedding customs, in the
symbolism attached to white cotton with a thin red stripe sattibaqla cloth which is given to
grooms by father-in-laws. The red stripe along its edge symbolizes the youths’ member”
(Carmichael, 1995).
Menelik entered Harar on January 8, 1887. Gebre Sellassie notes (Caulk, 1975) that the
Amir fled to his kinsmen near Jigjiga, who fought alongside him at the battle of Chelenko and
wanted to continue the holy war. Caulk (1975), further noted that on top of the conflict among
the clans of the Oromos and the Somalis, psychologically people were not probably ready to
support the Amir wholeheartedly as traditionally it was believed that the Amir was cursed by
62
Information obtained from the diary of the research’s father Abubaker Ahmed Yusuf, grandchild of Yusuf
Berkhedle
63
Personal communication with Sheik Ahmed, who teaches at the grand Mosque in Harar
75
God, for he ordered the slaughtering of Italian travelers, which people believed was against
Islam.
Along the settlement of new administrators and settlers with a different religion, language
and manner of life, new values were introduced with the “amharization of Harar (Nicholl, 1997,
p. 123). Financially, Menelik put his hand on Hararis and Harar’s cash revenue collecting, for
instance, up to $150,000 as ransom from Hararis (Caulk, 1975) which enabled him to re-arm his
army. From this Caulk had concluded that, probably, without that cash revenue and the
munitions left behind by the Egyptians Menelik’s success at Adwa battle would have been less
likely. As any other victor, he confiscated all the houses of those who had died fighting him. He
put payment of indemnity as a condition to leave the town without inflicting any damage (Caulk,
Different versions were given as who were the negotiators from the side of the Hararis
and how the negotiation carried on. According to Menelik’s chronicles, the Amir’s uncle, Ali
Abubaker, Qadi Abdullahi and the richest trader in Harar, Yusuf Berkhedle, were delegates who
went to the outskirts of the town and negotiated the condition of the surrender of the city (Gebre-
Sellassie, 1930). Others, like Atsme Georges, the spy who was installed in the city, stated that it
was not Menelik who sent to the town people to send delegates; rather they sent delegates who
begged Menelik to spare their belongings at the expense of the property of the Amir. Menelik
then agreed on that term and sent his treasurer to take inventory (Caulk, 1975).
The third version according to Cerulli (1936) is that one of the businessmen who survived
the restriction imposed by the Amir on foreign merchants was begged by the people to go to
Menelik to spare their lives and properties for their surrender in return. Menelik accepted that
offer and assured them the army would not do any further harm and the people’s religion would
76
be respected (Caulk, 1975) Menelik’s promise, however, had not stood the test of time. As Caulk
(1975) noted, his visit to the richer households were piratical and he confiscated some of the
houses. He destroyed a mosque built by the Egyptians and replaced it with a church to signify the
success of the Christian Highlanders and humiliation to the defeated Muslim Hararis.
Sheik Ahmed Kebu,64 from his undated note had narrated that he got an opportunity to
read a paper when once he was summoned to Harar administration to translate an Arabic
manuscript, which turned out to be the agreement reached between Menelik and the elders. He
1. Amir Abdullahi was banned from involvement in politics and arming people;
2. All properties of those who died while fighting Menelik would be confiscated;
3. Amir Abdullahi would pay 40,000 Maria Theresa and 30,000 taaqa (bundle) of
Abudjedi clothes to Menelik;
On the other hand, the following rights and privileges were reserved to the Hararis:
Some parts of the agreement regulated tax matters. Menelik demanded “whatever had
been paid in taxes to the Egyptians was paid to him” (Caulk, 1975, p. 4) to which the elders
agreed. As will be seen, merchants were complaining on the amount of taxes the Egyptians put
up. One may wonder why Menelik continued with the taxes people complained against. Maybe
he was desperate to have it to purchase arms; maybe he used taxes as another mechanism to
punish Hararis.
64
One of those who found gey Medresa (school) and served as teacher and principal for more than 25 years.
77
He also ordered the elders to inform him of “any outside dangers and oppose any
injustice done to his new subjects appealing directly to him on their behalf if needed” (Caulk,
1995, p. 4). On the final day of his departure to Shewa he summoned the elders to Haramaya
and made them to swear holding the Quran that they would hold to their agreement which they
promised.
The approach Menelik adapted in relation to Harar was different from the classical way
of treating Muslims who lost a war. The reason could be similar to an approach adapted by the
Oromos, who found interest to preserve Harar rather than destroying it. Menelik preserved Harar
and Hararis for they were sources of revenue, skill and knowledge he needed badly, i.e. the trade
and the skill that the settlers and occupiers did not possess. The Hararis, on the other hand
accepted the terms set by Menelik for the time being, for they believed that was the only way to
preserve their city. So it was in the mutual benefit and interest of both parties to handle the new
situation unlike their forerunners. Probably, the presence of foreign merchants who had interest
in the preservation of Harar and Hararis for reasons that have been just stated could be another
78
CHAPTER THREE: VALUES, CLASSIFICATION AND ITS IMPORTANCE
Why Values?
Values in ordinary language have a variety of and changing connotations. They are used
as technical terms in various social sciences such as philosophy, economics, and the arts, and
more and more in sociology, psychology and anthropology (Kluckhohn, 1951). The problem is
the absence of agreement in defining values not only among different disciplines but within
disciplines as well.
As Fraser notes (Kluckhohn, 1951) while economics has three main definitions, each
with sub-variants, in philosophy there are numerous competing definitions. In economics, value
is the worth of a commodity or service measured against other commodities or services. Here the
term refers generally to the total money revenue, or price an item is sold for. It crops up from
exchange and, therefore, it is related with individual desire. That seems the reason why Graeber
(2001), when defining value in terms of economics, he stated that value is “the degree, to which
objects are desired, particularly, as measured by how much others are willing to give up getting
them.” (p.1) In Marxist political economy Graeber (2001) notes that the value of a product is
composed of, or created or determined by, all the labor involved in its production. Value for
For a sociologist, Graeber (2001) says value is a conception of what is ultimately good,
ways. For instance, Baruch noted (Moore and Bruder, 2005) that value, when utilized with a
79
prefix ‘absolute’ to refer to God to mean unlimited. Thus, while value in economics refers to
measurable quantities, in philosophy it has various definitions depending on the philosopher who
defines it.
Feather (1975), after reminding us that studying value is one way of involving in
interdisciplinary research, explains how value appears as a basic concept in theories that have
emerged from sociology, political science, education, social psychology, and anthropology, and
how it also has secured a place in historical analysis, philosophy and religion.
The fact that value is a concept studied by all social sciences puts one in an advantageous
position to utilize various sources and theories to understand and analyze group or individual
values from different angles and perspectives. Fedorak (2007) postulates how “anthropologists
rely on the knowledge and expertise of scholars from many disciplines” (p. xx), for example
history, religion, economics, sociology, psychology, medicine, gender studies, law and politics,
and indigenous studies. This multidisciplinary approach, which is more or less utilized in this
work, therefore, is to gain a broader understanding of questions related with values and groups
Furthermore, Albert (1956) notes that studying values that are virtually coextensive with
all cultures is then to study everything. Robbins and De Vita (1985) believe that the subject of
values is really what the field of anthropology is all about. Hence, it is plausible to say values are
embedded in every aspect of human life and studied by all social sciences to help humans to
broaden their understanding of human society. The existence of values in every culture,
therefore, enables one to use them as instrumentals to find common ground in social life.
80
Hence, Feather (1975) described the ever-present and important nature of value by
indicating: “…many disciplines have found necessary to invent when coming to grips with the
cognitive life of man, with a man as social actor, with the ways in which man is molded by his
culture and its social institutions and, more widely, with the distinctive characteristics of social
Therefore, the social fabrics and social sciences that study those structures are not value
free. In other words, our educations, politics, ideology, history, culture, philosophy, etc. are value
loaded. There is no area of life where the value question is not pertinent. This gives value
universal character. Hence, in one way or another, knowledge of value is a relevant vehicle to
Furthermore, as Kluckhohn (1951) stated, values are important to achieve group and
individual goals; “for individuals to get what they want and need from other individuals in
personal and emotional terms, to feel within themselves a requisite measure of order and unified
purpose” (p. 400). In other words, values determine our place in and help us to identify ourselves
with a group or community. As pointed out by Pan Wei (2009) values determine how
government officials behave, how parents and children behave towards each other, how
businessmen perform business, how professors do their teaching and research, etc. Hence, values
As discussed by Pan Wei (2009) it is, therefore, plausible to say values are key ideas for
violated, result in strong disapproval or punishment, and in endorsement and award if observed.
Values, therefore, could be considered to be part of the folkways of people—that is, the shared
behavior common to all, violation of which could lead to the imposition of various sanctions,
81
such as ostracism or physical punishment. That seems the reason why all social and group
cultures have their ‘must and must nots,’ violations of which are attended by severe and various
sanctions.
example, lays down the meaning of value as “the moral principles and beliefs or accepted
standards of a person or social group.” This is a definition of value from a moral perspective. As
it will be found out, this definition may not be comprehensive. On the other hand, while defining
value scholars (Kluckhohn, 1951; Rokeach, 1973; Feather, 1975, and Schwartz, 1994) give
emphasis to what Albert (1959) referred to as subclasses of values (goals, standards, interests, or
imperatives); instead she prefers a broad and inclusive definition that takes account of normative
Scott, (Orr, 2001) defined65 normative elements as norms that specify how things should
be done (e.g. how an old man should behave). Normative elements, therefore, help us to
determine whether actions are right or wrong or things are bad or good. For instance, it could be
said ‘children should go to bed early’ or a sign that reads ‘smoking is prohibited’ could be put in
public area. While the first act is encouraged by the community, the second one is discouraging
smokers by limiting the act at a certain space and time. The violation of both is followed with
sanctions of different degree and type. Values, therefore, contain desires, goals, standards, etc.
and the norms dealing with how they could be achieved or abandoned and the implementation of
65
Paper presented on International Symposium of the CIB W107 on Globalization and Construction “Meeting the
Challenge and Reaping the Benefit” 17-19 November, 2004, Bangkok, Thailand.
82
Kluckhohn, (1951) defines values as a “conception, explicit or implicit, distinctive of an
individual or characteristic of group, of the desirable which influences the selection from
available modes, means, and ends of action” (p. 395). Emphasizing ‘affective’ (‘desirable’),
informed that “this definition has taken culture, group, the individual’s relation to culture and
A very brief definition of value is given by Rokeach, (1973) as “an enduring belief that a
(1951) and Rokeach (1973) one of the characteristics of values is to select among the existing
using available modes, means and ends of action. Then values are about choices among
alternatives. It is how to decide between or among different possible actions. Values enable the
individual, the group, or the society to take the better or best one and leave the inferior or the
worst one. The selections are influenced by the values referred to as ‘conceptions’ by Kluckhohn
“represents a definable preference for something to something else. The ‘something’ is a specific
contrary mode or end state” (p. 10). Two mutually exclusive modes of behavior or end-states are
compared with one another-for example, responsible and irresponsible behavior; honest and
dishonest; one of the two is distinctly preferable to the other. Therefore, as noted by Graeber
83
(2001), “they are the criteria by which people judge which desires they consider legitimate and
The comparison is, however, made not only between two opposite modes of behavior or
end-state of existence. It is made also between similar values that exist in one’s value systems.
Before proceeding, it is worthy to bring to light the link the relative stability of values
and their changing character has with the hierarchy of values in the discourse of a value system.
Rokeach (1973) says “the enduring (stability) quality of values arises mainly from the fact that
they are learnt or taught in isolation from other values in an absolute, all-or-non manner” (p. 6)
i.e., without any qualification or exceptions. For instance, during child hood a family teaches its
children not to lie under any circumstances. Nevertheless, when they grow they learn that
sometimes lying is important or useful, for instance, to reconcile spouses or save lives. Hence, at
childhood children are not taught “that such modes or end-states are sometimes desirable and
sometimes are not. “It is the isolated and thus the absolute learning of values that more or less
The child goes to school, makes friends, and learns from his teachers and peers, which
exposes him to new social situations in which several values rather than one value may come
into competition with one another, requiring a weighing of one value against another- a decision
of which value is more important. In the case of either telling the truth or lying, people face two
choices, either failing to reconcile the spouses by telling the truth or reconcile the spouses by
lying, i.e. to seek success or remain honest. Nevertheless, “gradually, through experience and
process of maturation, we all learn to integrate the isolated, absolute values we have been taught
84
in this or that context into a hierarchically organized system, wherein each value is ordered in
Therefore, values are learned in many different ways. A person’s family plays the most
important role, for that purpose as family is responsible to teach children what is right and wrong
long before other influences. This seems to be the reason why sometimes it is said that a child is
a reflection of his parents. As a child starts school, school helps to shape some of his or her
values. Then there are social institutions, such as religion, that the family introduces to a child
In the process of socialization the young person picks up relationship and social values,
most of which will be used throughout the rest of his or her life. The values those are learned
through both formal and informal means could be general social values or values relevant to
specific social institutions. It could be said, therefore, that values are products of social
institutions.
Another important element Rokeach (1973), used in his definition is belief, 66 classifying
it into three types. The first of these are descriptive or existential believes: those capable of being
true or false, or correct or incorrect, such as ‘I believe that now it is raining.’ This goes along
with what Kluckhohn (1951) has stated concerning beliefs. The second one is evaluative belief
wherein the object of belief is judged to be good or bad, or right or wrong. For instance, when
one believes that smoking is bad for the health. Kluckhohn has related this to value. The third
one is prescriptive or proscriptive belief, wherein some means or end of action is judged to be
desirable or undesirable, for instance, when one believes that it is desirable to behave honestly.
According to Rokeach (1973) value is a belief of the third kind for value is a belief upon which a
66
This word is also used by Schwartz and Bilsky (1990), Schwartz (1992; 1994) for similar purposes.
85
man acts by preference. Hence, while value for Kluckhohn is evaluative belief for Rokeach it is
On the other hand, Feather (1975) mentions as a passing remark that the distinction
between evaluative and prescriptive or proscriptive beliefs is not a sharp–one (for) one would
expect a person’s judgments about what is good or bad is highly correlated with his views about
what is desirable or undesirable. Then Feather (1975) concludes “it may be very difficult to
disentangle the two.” Values, then, are defined in terms of one’s belief about desirable
(Kluckhohn, 1951).
Values as beliefs have three components: cognitive, affective and behavioral (Rokeach,
1973). Illustrating each he states that to say a person has a value is to say that cognitively he
knows the correct way to behave or the correct end-state to strive for. In other words, he has
knowledge about the means or ends considered to be desirable (Feather, 1975). Second, a value
is affective in the sense that the person who held the value can feel emotional about it, be
emotionally for or against it, and approve of those who display positive instances and disapprove
of those who display negatives of it. Third, value has a behavioral component in the sense that it
is an intervening variable that leads to action when activated (Rokeach, 1973 and Feather, 1975).
Hence, “values are ideas formulating action commitments and instigators of behavior ‘within’
As Rokeach notes (Bruce and Elizabeth, 1998) values are classified as ‘values inherent in
an object’ and ‘values possessed by a person’ (p. 353). Bruce and Elizabeth (1998), however,
after pointing out that objects and outcomes by themselves do not possess values apart from the
values attached to them by a person, conclude that the place of both types of values is within the
86
individual. Feather (1995) noted that values held by a person will influence the value he or she
places on certain objects or outcomes. Therefore, the deeper we understand the values held by
individuals, the better our understanding of the values placed on objects or outcomes by that
individual.
mainly based on the definition of values and value systems provided by Rokeach (1973), the
relation between the object valued and the person who values is clearly stated:
Values involve both persons who engaged in valuing and the object that is being valued.
Values do not exist independently of persons, nor do they exist independently of objects.
They are influenced both by the properties of the person engaged in valuing-properties
that relate especially to his background of the experience- and by the characteristic of the
object being valued (p. 3).
Hence, while some authors, explaining how the value held by an individual influences the
value he places on certain objects, give greatest importance to the value held by an individual,
other scholars do not show favoritism between the value the individual holds and the valued
object.
Merging facts (objects) and values against intellectual folklore that adheres to the utter
separateness of fact and value, Thorndike notes (Kluckhohn, 1951) “values, positive or negative,
reside in the satisfaction or annoyance felt by animals, persons or deities. If the occurrence of X
can have no influence on satisfaction or discomfort of any one present or future, X has no value,
is neither good nor bad, neither desirable nor undesirable” (p. 390). Thorndike’s approach seems
87
These various definitions and explanations are essential to explore different facets of
values, and different kinds of orders in them, in order to construct different versions of social
world from various value perspectives. So the purpose should not be taken as fixing them
Like their definitions, classifications of values are as many in number as there are
discourses in various disciplines. Values could be classified into terminal goals and instrumental
goals, or as intrinsic end and instrumental end (Schwartz and Bilsky, 1990; Moore and Bruder,
2005) or “terminal or instrumental values” (Feather, 1975, p. 5). Values could be classified based
on dimensions, institutions or interest. Schwartz (1994) classifies them based on what he calls
universal requirements. They could be classified into core values and those that are not. First,
strives to achieve (e.g. equality, wisdom). “As the name implies they are pursued for their own
sake” (Bruce & Elizabeth, 1998, p. 353; Moore & Bruder, 2005, p. 262). They are either good in
themselves (wisdom) or good for they conform to a particular moral standard (e.g. to refrain
from pre-marital sexual intercourse). They are referred to as “end state values” (Feather, 1975, p.
Values as instrumental are performed as a means to other end (Moore and Bruder, 2005)
or they are, according to Feather (1975) “modes of behavior or conduct” (p. 5), for example
Honesty, helpfulness, capability, and obedient. The relationship between the instrumental and
terminal values may not be a one-to-one correspondence, for as explained by Rokeach (1973),
88
“one mode of behavior may be instrumental to the attainment of several terminal values; several
Kluckhohn (1951) maintains that “the distinction between ends and means is somewhat
transitory, depending upon time perspective. What at one point in the history of the individual or
the group appears as an end is latter seen as a means to a more distance goal” (p. 403). Moore
and Bruder (2005) illustrate this point by giving a simple example. They say:
When we, Moore & Bruder, sat down to write this book (Philosophy: the Power of Ideas)
our end was to finish it. But that end was merely instrumental to another end-providing
our readers with a better understanding of philosophy. But notice that the last goal, the
goal of providing our readers with a best understanding of philosophy, is instrumental to
a further end, namely, an enlightened society (p. 262). (Bracket added).
Feather (1975), after classifying values into instrumental and terminal, he further
classified instrumental values into those values having moral focus (moral values) and those
values concerned with competence and self-actualization (competence values). While one has to
behave honestly and responsibly towards others according to the moral values, in the latter case
one is expected to act logically and intellectually. While the violation of the former ones may
activate pangs of conscience or feeling of guilt, in the case of the latter one, however, the
the former case while one may be subject to praise or blame in the public’s eyes, in the latter
case one may experience pride or shame in one’s private feelings. Thus, while moral values
regulate the relations we have with the community or its members, the competence values, by
Before discussing other forms of classification it is worthy to raise one point in relation to
terminal values. As pointed out by Feather (1975), the crucial importance of values is seen when
a change occurs in one or more values following changes, especially to those referred to as
89
terminal values. For example, if for this or other reasons equality became more important within
a person’s terminal value system, one would expect that many changes would occur in relation to
his beliefs, attitudes and behaviors. The person may change his political allegiance, he might
actively promote egalitarian structures within his work situations, and/or the attitudes or beliefs
On the other hand, the effect is limited when the change is in attitude or beliefs but not in
the central values. Illustrating the two changes in his conclusions Feather (1975) writes, “while
changing a person’s central values is like interfering with the very foundation of the structure,
other changes are like removing or altering an isolated brick in the building” (p. 7).
fixed by the number of coordinates necessary and sufficient to distinguish any one of its
elements from all others. Accordingly he identified eight dimensional classifications. Only
classifications relevant for this work are briefly discussed below, however.
The first two are dimension of modality and dimension of content. Dimension of
modality is briefly discussed here. According to dimension of modality, values are classified as
positive and negative values depending on the sanctions applied to make certain of their
observation. Whereas, when the sanction attracts one to act in a certain way the values are
positive, and where it deters one from acting in that particular way the values are negative. Thus,
while the society rewards for observation of positive values it punishes for promoting negative
ones; while it applies a carrot for positive ones it applies a stick for negative ones.
90
Under dimension of intent, values are related with the aim or goal people have targeted to
achieve and the means they utilize. This classification is similar with the classification of values
into instrumental and goal values that has just been discussed. The former ones are “those which
actors or groups conceive as a means to further ends” while goal values are “the aims and virtues
which societies and individuals make for themselves” (Kluckhohn, 1951, p. 413). The means-end
relationship, however, is slippery and the relationship is not mere sequential, rather, complete
The fourth is dimension of generality. Here values are classified as specific and thematic
values. As noted by Kluckhohn (1951), while “some values are specific to certain situation or
certain content areas” (p. 413) other values are applied to a wide variety of situations and a
diverse area of cultural content. For instance, according to Harari tradition one should not cut or
file his nail inside one’s home for it invites poverty. After filing, it should be buried in the
ground. Children should stop playing after Mehkrib (sunset) Azan for that time is for aliens. One
should not clean one’s room in the presence of a guest for that act is to tell the guest to leave for
he or she is not welcome. One should take off one’s shoes outside gidir gambari when entering
one’s in-laws’ house. Otherwise, it is disrespectful. While in the first instance the value of
cleanliness guides the behavior, the value of reverence or modesty regulates the behavior of the
On the other, hand family members act in a certain way following the commandments in
scriptural texts, the Quran or the Bible. Or they are obedient in fear of authority; for example
children obey their parents who have some authority over them. Perhaps where reason rules
peoples’ behavior could result from rational thought. In all these situations the recipient of the
91
instruction is guided by values of obedience which are applicable to a wide variety of situations
Dimension of intensity is the fifth category. Categories of values under this dimension
deal with the strength of values depending on sanctions applied internally and externally and by
measuring the degree of the strive we made to attain or maintain status, objects, or events
(Kluckhohn, 1955). In other words, we measure the strength of values by the sanctions applied or
the striving we made either to attain or maintain status, objects or events. The higher the
sanctions the stronger the values are. The more persistence the message the stronger the values
are. Families ground their children to contain them within the values set by the families. Or on
top of that they may forbid them from watching their favorite show on TV or play with their toys
or meet their friends. The higher the family values the children violate the more severe the
Sanctions are, therefore, relevant to see that individuals or groups observe values for they
constrain the impulses of individuals and see they conform to the standards set by a group or
society. Thus values, by setting standards, hold down improper biological impulses; if let free
Hence, values expressed through standards and backed by sanctions are indispensable to
social life. For social life and living in a social world both require standards ‘within’ the
individual and standards roughly agreed upon by individuals who live and work together. There
can be no personal security and stability of society under random carelessness, irresponsibility,
and purely impulsive behaviors where these are not contained by observation of values backed
by sanctions.
92
This, however, does not mean values are adhered to owing only to penalties imposed
through sanction. Their observations are also attributed to their award of right deed or behaviors.
Kluckhohn (1951), summarizing approved and disapproved behaviors and their corresponding
sanctions, states “approval is shown by many kinds of expressive behavior, by deeds of support
and assistance while acts regarded as a deviant, abnormal and psychotic invite disapproval which
is manifested from avert and aggression, through persistent avoidance, to the subtle nuance of
culturally standardized facial expression” (p. 404). A child, for instance, could tell from his
mother’s tone or her facial expression whether his action is tolerable or intolerable. Hence, under
the dimension of intensity values are found in every culture, expressed in their ‘must’ and ‘must
not’ or ‘do’ ‘do not’ violations or observations which are attended by severe sanctions or awards.
There is a possibility for the influence of values to fade away as time passes, either by
totally turning obsolete or becoming weak. Such kinds of values are referred to by Kluckhohn
(1951) as hypothetical values. They are values for which some lip service is provided but whose
influence upon action is relatively small. Examples for hypothetical values are traditionalistic
values. These are values that have “historical associations in the culture but which have lost most
of their operative force because of change in other aspects of the culture or institutions”
and from society to society depending on time. For instance, to deter what the community
There was wide use of humiliating punishments such as being forced to stand naked in a
white sheet before the whole congregation on a Sunday morning, while confessing to the
sin of fornication or adultery. Inhibiting practices of this emotional intensity, backed up
by both legal force and moral and religious proscription induced profound feelings of
sexual guilt. Here the authoritarian family, the authoritarian church, and the authoritarian
state were reciprocally reinforcing. (Stone, 1994, pp. 74-80)
93
Hence, the basic values used in old times for that purpose were piety, religious devotion,
and obedience to one’s superior expressed in overt acts of respect towards the father and
husband. Various institutions were involved to enforce these values; the principals were the
Nevertheless, the change from small town and rural-centered way of life to an urban
industrial one has brought in its wake modifications in the relations and values within the family
and between the family and other institutional arrangements within the community. For instance,
the redefinition of sexual roles, increased discontinuities in age group relationship, and the
greater emphasis upon peer group culture, brought about a diminishment in the influence of
Traditional values, however, could be instrumental to overcome some challenges that the
community could face from time to time. These days, for instance, extremism is influencing the
youth in Ethiopia as anywhere in the world. To curb this, the government has worked with elders
and religious leaders. For the time being it seemed the government has overcome that.
dominant, variant and deviant. Dominant values, they said, are held by the majority of a group or
the most powerful elite, and conformity to these values brings the highest approval and reward;
for example, helping old people. On the contrary, adherence to variant values brings low-level
approval, or at any rate tolerance rather than punishment, for instance, to be Quran illiterate in a
Moslem community. Finally, deviant values, such as cheating, are disallowed by sanctions. One
can say, therefore, whereas the dominant values have a kind of authoritative character, the
variant ones have a permissive one. The last ones indeed have the prohibitive character. These
94
classifications correspond to the classification of values into prescription, permission and
prohibition.
Values could be clear and understood from what is stated orally by actors, or they could
be deduced from continuing tendency of the actors. This type of classification comes under what
classification, values which are stated verbally by actors are referred to as explicit values,
whereas values inferred by the observer from a recurrent trend in behavior, including verbal
behavior are implicit values. While the first type of values may require no third party to establish
their existence, the second ones may. Consequently, while explicit values are known directly
from personal value judgments, the implicit ones are inferred from verbal and non-verbal
behaviors that involve approval, disapproval, blame, praise, reward, punishment, support and
suppression.
This classification invites one relevant question: is value in the act or in the person?
Basically, some acts like stealing, killing or being dishonest are regarded as acts against the
values of the society. There are, however, situations where acts regarded by the society as acts
that go with the values of the society may result in consequences that go against the values of the
society. Take an instance where an individual is courteous to someone. This act or behavior of
courtesy may be to win favor from that someone, not due to the respect he has for that someone.
Here the act is generosity, the result is selfishness. On the other hand, basically killing a human
being is heinous act for it ends life, which is one of the most precious values of any society. We
may, however, kill to defend ourselves, our beloved ones or our country. Here the utterly evil act
results in preserving the best values of the society: life, security or honor. Hence, regard has to be
95
made to both the explicit and implicit values in measuring the importance of the individual’s
behavior.
Hence, while some gave emphasis to external factors for values to be observed, others
held that values are observed because of their inherent factors. To substantiate the first case,
values need outside support. In the second instance, since values are self-justifying they need no
external support. It seems both have their virtues. Values to be observed need both internal and
external factors. For example, one may believe that respect for the rights of every nation to
administer itself is right away an apparent value which needs no justification beyond itself. Yet
this belief can be strengthened by appealing to the social benefits of peace and collaboration that
The last classification comes under dimension of extent where values are classified
depending on the segment of society they cover. They could be held by an individual or group.
Group could refer to assembly of individuals, such as a family, faction, union, ethnic group,
inhabitants of certain community or civilization, or it could refer to (as pointed out by Feather,
(1975) “special groups such as student activists, delinquent or immigrant groups” (p. 2).
Under this category, therefore, we have personal and group values (Kluckhohn) or
personal and social values (Rokeach). Kluckhohn (1951) refers to personal values as distinctive
values, for they are strong desires that make individuals take action to keep or get something and
enhance that person as an individual. They are held by one person in the group under
consideration related to his background and experience (Kluckhohn, 1951, Feather, 1975).
Depending on the background and experience each member of a family or other group could
96
On the other hand, group values as Kluckhohn, (1951) states are “values which define the
common element” (p.417) and they are group-oriented as family values are, for instance. Family
values are utilized to create in each family member strong desires to be identified publicly as a
member of a certain family or a clan. To keep the rules and image of that family intact a parent
may tell an adolescent “as long as you live in my house you will abide by my rules.” These rules
most of the time, reflect common commitment among the members to get or keep house rules,
religious traditions such as Christmas and Eid, family secrets or clan loyalty, etc. Therefore,
while private or personal values are self-centered, group or social values are society-centered,
interpersonal-focused.
Previously it has been indicated how values regulate our behaviors either by inducing us
to act or refrain from acting. The reason, however, varies depending on whether the values are
public or private. Thus, where they are public as Kluckhohn noted (Bruce and Elizabeth, 1998)
“the threat of social sanctions (e.g., shame, punishment) will induce individuals to conform to
dominant social values in their public action” (p.356). In other words, blame in the publics’ eyes
induces individuals to do the accepted thing. Of course, this does not require conformation
between individual’s internalized personal values and the dominant social values; the latter one
prevails.
There are situations where individuals observe values where there is no comparison
between individual’s internalized values and socially dominant values. Under such
internalized values (i.e., ideal self) function as personal standards of conduct” (Meglino &
Ravlin, 1998, p. 356). Here what works is shame in one’s private feelings. Thus, unlike public
values in the case of private values, individuals conform to those values not because of the
97
pressure that would come from the public, rather “to avoid internal negative feelings” (Meglino
& Ravlin, 1998, p. 356).This is a circumstance where public and private values work
‘independently.’
There is, however, a situation where both public and private values work together to
regulate an individual’s behavior. Take a soccer player who would like desperately to get drunk
after his first big game. His whim pushes him to get drunk, but his values of personal
achievement and loyalty to his teammates, coach and club, which are private values, inhibit him
from drinking. On the other hand, he may not be effective in his performance on the football
field in the next match, which may result in the disapproval of him by his teammates and his fans
On the other hand, the relationship between these two types of values could be inversely
proportional, for “an increase in one social value will lead to an increase in other social values
and decrease in personal values; and, conversely, that an increase in a personal values will lead
to increases in other personal values and to decreases in social values.” (Meglino & Ravlin,
1998, p. 356) For instance if, for this or that reason, equality became more important within a
person’s value system, he might actively promote egalitarian structures within his work situation.
Hence, this classification could enable one to know variations in personal attitude depending on
Rokeach, (1973) stating every human value as a “social product” (p.24) that has
transmitted and preserved in successive generations through one or more of society’s institutions,
he preferred institutions as bases for classifications. These institutions, which are custodian of
values, are religious, family, educational, political, economic and legal institutions each
98
specialized in a certain subset of values. For instance, whereas “religious institutions are
specialized in furthering a certain subset of values that we call religious values” (Rokeach, 1973,
These values may compete or reinforce each other. For instance, religious and family
values may reinforce each other. One example could be the rights parents and legal guardians
have to bring up their children ensuring their religious and moral education in conformity with
their own convictions. Moreover, families reinforce other institutions as well, such as
educational institutions for parental duties include teaching basic social, religious, and technical
skills and values to the young. Hence, “the values that one institution specializes in are not
necessarily completely different from those in which other institutions specialize” (Rokeach
1973.p.25). On the other hand, where values do not have common characteristics they may
compete. For instance, religious and secular institutions within a society may compete where one
insists the separation of religion from state while the other opposes that.
After classifying values and establishing their relationship Rokeach (1973) provided one
“If it is indeed the case that the maintenance, enhancement, and transmission of values within a
society should provide us with a reasonable point of departure for comprehensive compilation
This work argues Harari values are institutionalized in family, religious and educational
institutions, and other social and economic institutions, such as baha, afocha, jamaa, marign,
gel, etc. They serve as conveyors of values through time and space. Such an approach will
contribute in the comprehensive compilation and classification of Harari values that will lead to
99
further identification of institutions with their values and come up with complete compilation
Schwartz, (1994), after noting Kluckhohn’s (1951) and other scholars’ classification of
values as theory-based attempt classification, that has not enjoyed wide acceptance and
criticizing Rokeach (1973) for no-elaboration of his classification of values according to the
societal institutions that specialize in maintaining, enhancing and transmitting them, introduced
three universal requirements to classify values. These are “needs of individual as biological
organisms, requisites of coordinated social interaction, and requirements for the smooth
functioning and survival of groups” (pp. 20-21). The value types, each defined in terms of its
central goal as indicated in a bracket with their specific exemplary values, are as follows:
2. Stimulation (excitement, novelty, and challenge in life)-Its exemplary values are daring,
varied life, and exciting life;
3. Hedonism (pleasure and sensuous gratification for oneself)-Its exemplary values are
pleasure and enjoying life;
5. Power (social status and prestige, control or dominance over people and resources)-Its
exemplary values are social power, authority and wealth;
7. Conformity (restraint of actions, inclinations, and impulses likely to upset or harm others
and violate social expectations or norms)- Its exemplary values are politeness, obedience,
honoring parents and elders;
100
8. Tradition (respect, commitment, and acceptance of the customs and ideas that traditional
culture or religion provide the self)-Its exemplary values are humble, devout and
accepting my portion in life;
9. Benevolence (preserving and enhancing the welfare of those with whom one is in
frequent personal contact (the ‘in-group’)-Its exemplary values are helpful, honesty and
forgiving;
10. Universalism (understanding, appreciation, tolerance, and protection for the welfare of all
people and for nature)-Its exemplary values are broad minded, social justice and equality.
Though Schwartz (1994) notes the possibility of classifying all items found in lists of
specific values from different cultures into one of these ten types of values, he does not rule out
the possibility of an increase in the number of types of values in the future. For instance, he
informs that “values that represent the goal of finding meaning in life (e.g., meaning in life, a
spiritual life, inner harmony) fulfill the definitional requirement to be classified as the eleventh
Then he proceeds to explain some interactions between or among these ten basic types of
values. The following are some examples. Though tradition and conformity values are especially
close motivationally as they share the goal of subordinating the self in favor of socially imposed
expectations, they differ primarily in the objects to which one subordinates the self.
like religious and cultural customs and ideas. As a result, conformity values urge responsiveness
101
Benevolence and conformity values both promote cooperative and supportive social
relations. However, benevolence values provide an internalized motivational base for such
Adherence to one type of value may conflict or may be compatible with the pursuit of
another value type. “For example, the pursuit of achievement values may conflict with the
pursuit of benevolence values; as seeking personal success for oneself is likely to obstruct
actions aimed at enhancing the welfare of others who need one’s help. In like manner, the pursuit
of tradition values conflicts with the pursuit of stimulation values. Accepting cultural and
religious customs and ideas handed down from the past is likely to inhibit seeking novelty,
challenge, and excitement. On the other hand, the pursuit of benevolence and conformity values
is compatible: as both require behaving in a manner approved by one’s close group” (Schwartz,
1994).
Thus, one could either move towards or away from the values. For instance, one could
move towards achievement values as an expression of success and power values as maintaining a
dominant position. On the other hand, tradition and conformity values expect submission from a
member of the society. Hence, if one wants to avoid sanction and punishment one moves
towards these values and if not one moves away from them and face the consequences.
Depending on the society or the period one lives in one treats conformity and benevolence as
towards or away value. If the society is in favor of supportive and cooperative social relations, as
African societies, these values are towards values. If the society is challenging resistance one
102
In the political environment that prevails in the West, especially Europe, the political
parties differ on the values they give priority. For instance, political parties with right-wing
orientation are likely to give priority to security, tradition and conformity (Schwartz, 1992). On
the other hand, as the views of the left-wing orientated parties are grounded on universalism they
are concerned for the welfare and interests of others. Hence, values which are towards values for
the left-wing political viewers could be away from values for the right-wing political parties.
Endorsing this, Schwartz (1992) noted that “voting for a party with a left orientation correlates
most positively with universalism values and most negatively with security values” (p. 5).
Then one can say values are what you move towards and away from. It could be said they
are like a compass that gives direction or as it is indicated in the “United State Air Force Core
Values” (1997) they are road signs inviting one to consider key features. Values, therefore,
motivate or de-motivate behaviors. Then values exert a powerful effect upon people’s lives. For
example, they determine which store people prefer, how they handle their family and who they
vote for, what they learn, what book they like to read, the movies they watch and their religious
As pointed out by Schwartz and Bilsky, (1990) “values may serve individualistic interests
(e.g., pleasure, independent), collective interests (e.g., equality, responsibility) or both types of
interests (e.g., wisdom)” (p.879). Societies may, therefore, vary substantially in the emphasis
their members give to individualism versus collectivism. For instance, in one study that covered
40 countries, while USA ranks first, Hong Kong ranks 36 on emphasizing individualism
(Schwartz and Bilsky, 1990). It could be, therefore, said that USA society is probably more
individualistic. This is so, probably, for the system that the USA in particular and the Western
103
society in general is built on philosophy that promotes individual freedom developed by classical
philosophers like Hobbes, Locke and Rousseau as a reaction to the medieval thought that was
deep rooted in traditional authority based on divine wisdom, religion and the common law
(Cobbah, 1987).
Hence, Hobbes (1996) came with a theory of “the state of nature,” (p. 83) a logical device
upon which he built his political philosophy. It was an inference made from the passion, chiefly
the fear of violent death, the motive which he thought to be the most ‘natural’ or fundamental of
all. To avoid this and come out of the state of nature, therefore, man has to use, according to
Hobbes (1996), his own power as he will himself, for the preservation of his own nature-that is
Even though it is possible to portrait human beings as selfish and wicked, from what
Hobbes said, he informed as well that there is human reason and necessity which led the species
into a community pact which forced humans to agree to surrender their rights to a divine rule
(Hobbes, 1996).
Like Hobbes (1996), Locke (1953) as well rejected medieval authority. His theory,
however, is based on the market economy which is the model for natural behavior, including the
assertion of rights and the conclusion of agreements. Unlike Hobbes (1996), Locke (1953),
therefore, sees two pacts: the first one which brought individuals together to form a community,
and the second one a pact to appoint an individual among the group to become the ruler and
Similarly, Rousseau (1987), after expressing his worry that the human race would perish
if it did not alter its mode of existence, i.e. state of nature, he noted that, to avert that, men
invented what he called a sum of forces based on social contract that produced the state, the
104
people and the citizen. Here the individual again has a significant role. To start with, the
sovereign is formed entirely from among the private individuals. Consequently, “it neither has
nor could have interest contrary to theirs” (Rousseau, 1987 p. 150), i.e. individuals in which
sovereignty continues to reside in the ordinary people. In effect the right of ruler did not
Cobbah (1987), provides, from this theory of natural rights, three mainstreams of rights.
The first one is the equality of all human beings; there is no hierarchy in nature. The second one
is the inalienability of rights, which provides for the individual the right to stand against any
intrusion from both individuals and state, and the right to own and keep property. The third one
is individualism, which explains why the individual is consumed by a desire for self-preservation
in state of nature, and it is this need for the individual survival that leads to the social contract.
individualized through teaching physical and emotional self-dependence. He noted that the
family takes steps to pass and maintain individualism in the infant. As the mother is a bread-
winner for the family she substitutes a bottle for her breast. Even she presents affection to the
infant as a series of approvals for achievements and attributes. The mother creates the need to
privacy which brings related needs such as time for oneself, a room for oneself, freedom of
choice, and freedom to plan one’s own life. When maturity is attained and a job is secured, he
spends his own wealth installing private bathrooms in his house, and buying a private car, if he
can afford it a private yacht, private wood, and private beach. From this Kluckhohn (1951)
remarked that the need for privacy is an imperative one in Western society, recognized by
official bodies. And it is part of a system which stems from and expresses its basic values.
105
The assumption is, therefore, society is made up of individuals, and most conceptions of
human rights are based on the idea that individuals own themselves. Hence, they have the right
to prevent others from intruding on their bodies, their houses, or their minds. Stone (1994), in his
Tanner Lecture on Human Values, admits this, saying “we in America above all encourage
individualism and self-esteem, whereas in former times we inculcated the great principle of
subordination” (p. 78). The “former” refers to early sixteenth century when obedience to the
This Western philosophy based on individualism found its way to Africa when Africa
was colonized, and most of the political and legal systems of the African countries reflect this
(Cobbah, 1987). There is, however, African philosophy which preceded this philosophy and is
deep-rooted in African Society. Basically, its base is not an individual, rather a community.
As people, Africans emphasize group-ness, sameness, and communality. Rather than the survival
of the fittest and control over nature, the Africans world view is tempered with the general
guiding principle of the survival of the entire community and a sense of co-operation,
In the words of Biko (1978) Africans regard their living together not as an unfortunate
calamity warranting endless competition among themselves but as a deliberate act of God to
make them a community of brothers and sisters jointly involved in the search for a multiple
answers to the varied problems of life. Hence, in all what Africans do, they always place man
first and, hence, all their actions are usually joint community-oriented actions rather than
individualism.
106
The philosophy of communalism is not, however, limited to Africa as Kluckhohn (1951)
explains:
The Arapesh, with their value of socialism, created a wide gap between ownership and
possession, which they could then bridge with a multitude of human relations. They plant
their trees in someone else’s hamlet, they rear pigs owned by someone else, and they eat
yams planted by someone else. The Ontong-Javanese, for whom also the good is social
value the sharing of the details of everyday living. They have created a system, very
confusing to an American student, whereby a man is a member of at least three
ownership groups, determined along different principles, which are engaged
cooperatively in productive activities; and of two large households, one determined along
matrilineal lines, one along patrilineal lines. Thus, an Ontong-Javanese man spends part
of the year with his wife’s sisters and their families, sharing with them the intimate
details of life, and the rest of the year on an outlying island, with his brothers and their
families (p. 427).
This approach could help to understand the importance people attach to values depending
on whose interests the values serve. Thus, one can note that people from the non-western world
are maintaining distinct values. It is worthy if this part is concluded with the summary given by
Stone (1994) on value related with individualism and communalism:
There is at stake a basic clash of stiles of thoughts, the one liberal and individualist the
other ‘communitarian’ and ‘holist’. The one sees the individual, his freedom, his interest
and his project at the center of the field, society and social relationship as marginal to the
hard irreducible core of his individuality, the other starts with the social relationships
themselves and sees the individual as a function of them, regards the individual not as an
independent being related only externally to others, but as a being whose whole nature is
constituted by the character of the social relations in which he stands. (p. 78).
Core Values
“Core” speaks of something essential, fundamental or central. Hence core values are, as
noted by Pan (2009), those which govern the basic relationships of a society, and their collapse
brings about the collapse of the society. Therefore, a society’s core values should be an accurate
reflection of what that society is about. If one extends this to an individual, as core values are the
very foundation that the individual is built on, they exist at the heart of what the individual
thinks, speaks and does. They are what drive the individual.
107
They are, therefore, the strongest desires of persons on which their other values rest. A
child could tell the truth and bear the consequence rather than lying if his core value is telling the
truth. For instance, he would say, "Father I cannot tell a lie, I took the money to buy books” (Pan
Wei, 2009, p. 57). He kept to the truth regardless of what he would get as the consequences.
Therefore, core values are things you feel strongly enough about to keep regardless of what you
get.
For instance, the early religious martyrs kept their faith despite facing death and various
hardship and tortures; another example is liberty, that is a core value for all human beings for it
is a value on which all else in our life is depended. It is a common telling when people say ‘they
would prefer death if they could not keep their liberty.’ Liberty is the core value on which all
others in our life depended. Our core values are, therefore, those strong desires which we will not
yield on or compromise. They are the bedrock of our life and our morality.
Organizations as well have core values, which differ from organization to organization.
For instance, for a religious organization the core values could be truth, spiritual growth,
evangelism, etc. For an army unit the core values could be integrity first, service before self and
excellence in all we do (United States Air Force Core Values, 1997). It could be honor, courage
and commitment for the USA Department of the Navy according to the Navy’s Core Value
Charter.
A nation also could have core values reflected in its constitution and other documents.
For instance the core values of the United States are expressed in the Declaration of
Independence, the United States Constitution and other significant documents, speeches and
writings of the nation. Some of the core values are:67
1. Life: The individual’s right to life should be considered inviolable except in certain
highly restricted and extreme circumstances, such as the use of deadly force to protect
one’s own or others’ lives.
67
Social Studies Bulletin No. 86, 1991
108
2. Liberty: The right to liberty is considered an unalterable aspect of the human condition.
Central to this idea of liberty is the understanding that the political or personal obligations
of parents or ancestors cannot be legitimately forced on people. The right to liberty
includes:
2.1 Personal freedom: the private realm in which the individual is free to act, to think
and to believe, and which the government cannot legitimately invade;
2.2. Political freedom: the right to participate freely in the political process, choose
and remove public officials, to be governed under a rule of law; the right to a free
flow of information and ideas, open debate and right of assembly;
2.3 Economic freedom: The rights to acquire, use, transfer and dispose of private
property without unreasonable governmental interference; the right to seek
employment wherever one pleases; to change employment at will; and to engage in
any lawful economic activity.
4. Common good: The public or common good requires that individual citizens have the
commitment and motivation – that they accept their obligation – to promote the welfare
of the community and to work together with other members for the greater benefit of all.
5. Justice: People should be treated fairly in the distribution of the benefits and burdens of
society, the correction of wrongs and injuries, and in the gathering of information and
making of decisions.
7. Diversity: Variety in culture and ethnic background, race, lifestyle, and belief is not only
permissible but desirable and beneficial in pluralistic society.
8. Truth: Citizens can legitimately demand that truth-telling as refraining from lying and full
disclosure by government is the rule, since trust in the veracity of government constitutes
an essential element of the bond between governors and governed.
9. Popular sovereignty: The citizenry is collectively the sovereign of the state and hold
ultimate authority over public officials and their policies.
109
.
10. Patriotism: Virtuous citizens display a devotion to their country, including devotion to
the fundamental values upon which it depends.
As it has been discussed, values are about choice. They help individuals to decide
between different possible courses of actions depending on their respective values. Hence, they
are relevant to such matters as choice of friends, selection of occupation and manner of pursuing
it. In doing so, they serve important social functions. It will not, therefore, be an overstatement if
it is said that values dictate what people love, hate, are just indifferent to (Mojac & Jernej, 2009
as noted by Richard and Philip (1985) since the ultimate decisions one makes is determined by
the values he/she holds. Values are, therefore, relevant for individuals to live as a free, rational
human being.
While discussing the hierarchy of values it was suggested that a child learns values in an
absolute manner. As it is noted by Robbins and De Vita (1985) when students join college they
come with an idea that things are true or false, right or wrong. After they come across a variety
of people with diverse values they realize there are alternative views to choose between. Hence
values, by detaching people from narrow views they have about others, become sources for their
satisfaction, harmony or empathy. All choices, however, may not be comfortable. Values,
Classification informs people of the relevancy of values as well. For instance, the
classification of values into terminal and instrumental is important for they are sources of
classification that moral values, which urge one to act honestly and responsibly, are found. It is
110
this classification as well that informs why people are making paradigm shifts in their political,
Society applies various mechanisms to regulate the behavior of its members. It is in the
classification of values that one finds reward is one positive form of sanction that regulates
behaviors. Classification is also relevant to find out common values. Society arranges its values
hierarchically to inform its members which values are most valued and held by a majority and
powerful elite. While adherence to them brings rewards, their violation results in severe
punishment. Hence, where there is conflict between values held by the individual and the
community, the individual brings his values in line with the society’s values.
Classification of values may help to find out the hidden motive or intention of
individuals. This is the case when sometimes the actual values that regulate some ones decisions
are not obvious. For instance, the apparent values to be a teacher could be nobility. The hidden or
actual value that led to this profession could be authority. Under such circumstances the actual or
hidden value overrides the apparent or exterior values. The society’s concern, therefore, should
be with the actual values not with the apparent one, and its objective should be to see that the
behavior of the members conforms to a set of values that foster the development of personality
Since personality necessarily develops within social context, and institutions are forums
where some associations with others are created for the self to develop, Rokeach’s (1973)
institutional approach of values is applied to identify Harari values. Among social institutions,
basic and key ones to social integration are identified. The values embedded in them are
discussed. Hence, family and educational institutions, such as Quran gey and Madrasa, mosques
as educational institutions, afocha, jamaa, ahli, marign and gel as social and economic
111
institutions are identified as they nurture, preserve and transmit Harari values. As a custodian of
various and distinct values, cooperation rather than competition is prevailing among these
institutions. Designation of values is important, as observing and describing values are. Harari
language is applied where values have designations in Harari expounded through Schwartz‘s
(1994) approach.
112
CHAPTER FOUR: THE ROLE OF SYMBOLIC VALUES IN SELF-REGULATION OF
HARARI FAMILIES
Introduction
E. W. Smith (1952), equated the African's livelihood with passing through a sequence of
rooms, the doors of which open and close as one makes advancement. Each phase is marked by
ceremonies which are flourished in vibrant symbolism. The ceremonies commence with birth
and a naming, followed by introduction into maturity and membership of the tribe. Then there is
a marriage ceremony, death and burial, and, to complete the cycle, what Zulus call ukubuyisa,
Similarly, this chapter discusses the birth, circumcision, naming and marriage ceremonies
of Hararis with their various symbols expressed through rituals, actions, words and gestures,
along with the values preserved in them to regulate individual and group behaviors. It also
discusses how Hararis use symbols as vehicles for the expression of values, which are significant
for their social relations. Death and related ceremonies is discussed in chapter seven.
The indigenous people of the walled city of Harar call themselves gey usu or Harari.
Others call them adre (Waldron, 1978). Gey usu means ‘people of the city’ as “gey” means
“city.” Their language is gey senan, i.e. the city language. Gey usu has its own culture and way
of life called gey aada, i.e. the city culture manifested through symbols expressing various
values. Waldron (1975b) writes that gey usu is the totality of all these and others such as Islam
and membership in ahli, (kinship), marign or gel (friendship) and afocha, i.e. social institutions
113
As it has already been observed the history of Hararis is discussed by (Caulk 1971,
Burton, 1894, Cerulli, 1936, and Trimingham, 1951,), etc. This history includes Hararis’ social
organizations, shrines, Quran Gey. Little or nothing is said about the Harari symbols and values
preserved in them though they are inherent in the very texture of human life (E.W. Smith, 1952)
Symbolism and the active use of symbols have been used as long as man can remember.
For example “for many primitive cultures the sun was a symbol for God, as was the moon”
(Kertzer 1988). Furthermore, as pointed out by Bayley (2006) the cat, in the Egyptian Mau,
became the symbol of the sun-god, as among the Greeks the Butterfly was the symbol of the
soul. The eagle, the stars and stripes, the Constitution, and even the Presidency are symbols for
Similarly, depending on who administered the country, various symbols appear on the
Ethiopian flag. These include: a lion holding a cross representing the Lion of Judah and
Christianity; a blue star representing the aspiration of nations, nationalities and the people; and
different religious communities of Ethiopia to live together (article 3(2) of the FDRE
Constitution)68 Following the federal political arrangement, member states put various symbols
on their flags, including a camel of the Somali Regional State to a cross dagger for the Afar
Regional State.
Hararis too designed their flag consisting of black, (in remembrance of the defeat they
suffered at the battle of Chelenko), crimson (the blood shaded by the young Hararis in that war)
and white (to signify the promise the future holds). Symbols are, therefore, another way of
communicating the thoughts, meanings, and hopes of a particular cultural group. They can be
68
Proclamation No. 1/1995. Proclamation of the constitution of the Federal Democratic Republic of Ethiopia. 1st
year No. 1. Addis Ababa, 21st August, 1995.
114
expressed through “pictures, words, art, architecture, and common household items” (Mullen
2005, p. 6).
Identifying sample Harari symbols related to birth and marriage reflected through rituals,
actions, gestures and posters and the role they play in regulating individual and group behaviors
is the objective of this chapter. How Hararis associate symbols with the values enshrined in them
will be discussed as well. As noted by Raymond Firth in Smith (1952) “Symbolism serves as a
vehicle for the expression of values which are significant for the social relations of the people”
(p. 18).
For this purpose, few symbols and values that are pivotal in the individual and social life
of Hararis were identified and analyzed. A conclusion was made from the observations and
analysis. It is worthy, however, to say a few words on symbols and their features before
wrote that “symbol points to referent; pictures the referent’s meaning; is an instrument for
comprehending a referent as part which represent the whole; serving to recall to mind an absent
referent” (p. 13). Hence, there is always a referent directed at, represented or evoked by a
symbol. Thus, a symbol is “definable in relation to something else that is called referent, object
or designation” (E. W. Smith, 1952, p. 13). These referents, objects or designations could be
“pictures, words, art, architecture or common house hold items” (Mullen, 2005, p. 6).
Thus, the origin of symbols could vary. Their origin could relate to words; for instance,
as pointed out by Bayley (2006) a cat in Egyptian Mau became a symbol of a sun-god as the
word Mau also means light. Or it could originate from the deed of a being; for example, fish
115
represented by a dolphin is symbolized as a friend of a man, for it is endowed with special talent
of saving man from shipwrecks. On the one hand, a snake religiously symbolizes evil, as
mankind attributes the expulsion of Adam and Eve from Heaven to the Serpent. On the other
hand, it is observed that the snake symbolizes a place of healing as a trademark of drug stores
One must be, therefore, careful in interpreting symbols, as one and the same referent
could convey different messages to different groups or could have different meanings. As
Or as pointed out by Stine, Cabak, and Groover (1996), a symbol could represent various
things, as blue beads serve as “a symbol of wealth, spiritual power to insure success in all aspects
of life including journey, hunting, farming, romance and to ward off evils, sickness, misfortunes
and to gain material gains” (p. 54). Furthermore, symbols could convey opposite meanings to
different groups. Thus, as pointed out by E. W. Smith (1952), for Romans the “cross was a
symbol of the utmost degradation and an obscene object never to be mentioned in polite society
while to the Christians it is a living symbol pointing to … the love of God which possess all
knowledge” (p. 19). Hence, the meaning we are rendering to a symbol is dependent on what
To further expound on this point it would be worthy to take two symbols prevailing in
Harar. The Medhanialem church (Savior of the World), built by Menelik when he entered Harar
as victorious from the Battle of Chelenko, is a place of worship and a symbol of victory for the
conservative Christian Amharas. That was why “as a symbolic assertion of Ethiopian power, the
116
main mosque was immediately destroyed and the Church was built in its place at the center of
the city. For the Hararis, however, it is a symbol of humiliation. Two cultures comprehend one
Following the downfall of the military regime, “in recognition of their historic
preeminence, the Hararis are granted the right to administer the city which they identify as their
home land.” (Gibb, 1997, p. 1) Following that, in 2008 the Hararis erected, in front of the church,
a memorial symbolizing the martyrs who sacrificed their lives at the Battle of Chelenko (see
figure 10). The conservative Christian Amharas take the memorial as a symbol of humiliation
while the Hararis take it as a sign of regaining the victory lost at the Battle of Chelenko.
117
Figure 10: Medhanialem Church and the Memorial for the Martyrs of the Battle of Chelenko
Painting nadabach, qeh afer (red soil) and giving a shawl with red stripes to the groom
are also symbols Hararis use to remember their Chelenko martyrs. Thus, “symbols are seen as
isolable, changing fields of social relationships” (Turner, 1975, p. 145). That is why symbols are
group… and are often seen in everyday life and appear during holidays and festivals” (Mullen,
2005, p. 6).
118
It would, therefore, be possible to argue that having an acquaintance with the symbols
and the values attached to them is a requirement to understand Hararis. This chapter, therefore,
identifies some of the symbols of Hararis, which are related to birth and marriage events and the
role they play in the social life of the Hararis for as noted by Durkheim (Smith, 1952) “social life
in all its aspect and in every period of its history is made possible only by symbolism” (p. 18).
Then this chapter establishes how the Hararis have been using those symbols and values
preserved in them to regulate individual and social behaviors. The symbols and related values
identified by this chapter are not, however, exhaustive; rather, they are indicative of further
Birth
Upon birth the Hararis do their level best “to strengthen the mother and her newly born baby for
the first month of its life.” (Gibb, 1999, p. 232) The baby spends the first 40 days in a secluded
69
room called dera where a curtain is hung on the doorway as a symbol to inform the presence
of a woman who has given birth to a baby who is less than 40 days old. Every visitor is,
therefore, expected at least to lower her voice not to disturb the mother and the baby who are
most of the time asleep. It is also believed that the curtain protects both, but especially the baby,
from evil eyes70. The curtain symbolizes a conformity value which restrains impulses from
A woman gives birth to a child at her family’s home to symbolize that the child, who is
referred to as zugma waldi for a boy and zugma qahat for a girl, is her first child. Meanwhile, her
mother nourishes her; her near relatives instruct her on how to take care of her baby. As this
69
Personal observation
70
Interview held with Abay Atiqa on 3/6/13 in Harar. All interviews with her sited here are made on similar day.
119
occasion is very significant, many visitors come with gifts for the baby and the mother. While
men leave after making an inquiry about the safe delivery of the baby, as well as the health of the
mother, women visitors, who are served with porridge and a sweet for their du’a (supplication)
and gifts they bring, stay for longer hour. Upon entering the house they say, “Mehdina!
They express their wish for the baby to be courageous and fast-growing saying “Wanag
zikhadamu, Hubab zisheladu!” meaning ‘Let the baby be fed like a lion and rejuvenate like a
snake that casts its hide.’ For the mother to accomplish that they say “qich zazsham qichim
zazsham afet qam be yabulash” meaning ‘whatever good food you eat let it be nourishing.’
Moreover, they say “waldiw haraq mulu! Aayu ursi mulu!” meaning “To embrace a healthy
baby let the breast of the mother be full with milk!” Thus, while the child is symbolized as a lion
and rejuvenate snake the mother is symbolized as a font of nourishment. Hararis consider breast
Absum (Circumcision)
A professional who is liable if he damages a penis, circumcises the baby on the 8 th day.
The instruction is: “Absum wa Nagu yidarabahkma kum kassa halbahkwa,”! Meaning “be
careful the thing you are circumcising is the one which the boy uses to saw and rip! If you
damage it, you will be held liable for one thousand cash.”
Traditionally, the foreskin is tied with a coin and buried by the boy’s paternal aunt in a
hole that is dug beneath amir nadaba symbolizing two things, according to kabir
Abdulmuheiman. It is to protect the boy from the evil spirits, as it is believed that evil spirits
dislike or are afraid of metals. The location where the items are buried reflects the family’s wish
for the boy to be a father or kabir for amir nadaba is a seat where the father sits whenever he is
71
Interview with Kabir Abdulmuheiman on 13/01/2013 in Harar
120
at home or a kabir sits while giving lesson or the Harari Amirs sat while giving justice.
Moreover, as amir nadaba is the raised seat among other nadabach the act is a symbolic value
reflecting social status, prestige, dominance and control (Schwartz, 1994). Since these days the
circumcision is carried out in a hospital or health center, some of the rituals are not observed.
A relative or a friend, who is informed about the circumcision, will say ‘Aa! Absum
Axum!’ Except for the b & x the sounds created by the two words seem similar. But if one looks
at the top part of the obelisk at Axum, its shape resembles a penis that is faultlessly circumcised,
which Hararis use as a symbol of perfection. Hararis came to know about Axum probably when
they invaded the whole northern part of Ethiopia under the leadership of Imam Ahmad, or maybe
Female circumcision is either Arab Absum where only an insignificant part of prepuce is
removed, or gey Absum where the clitoris is totally removed. The visitors, after inquiring if the
girl has passed urine believing it heals her wound, bless the circumcision saying: “a’alemwa
a’akil yakfata!” “Let scholar and intelligent open it,” meaning let an intelligent and scholar
marry her symbolizing the place knowledge, wisdom and intellect occupy in the Harari
community.
Female Genital Mutilation, (FGM) has been practiced among the Hararis, Somali and
Harar Oromos for years against the teaching of Islam that allows leaving the clitoris as it is or
removal of the prepuce as a Sunna. To find out why Moslem parents practice it, though it is
against Islam, discussions were held with few families on this issue.
Families do not want their daughters to have premarital sex to avoid humiliation on her
wedding day and devaluation of a bride-wealth which would be similar to the amount paid for a
widow when she re-marries. Expounding this Waldron (1975a) indicated “wahachi (a virgin girl)
121
may be given $500 and gufta (a widow marrying for the second time) may be given $200.” (p.
243). Similar practice was observed by the Zulu, though in different context, for “Zulus would
regard it as a reflection on the girl's chastity and a deadly insult if parents of a suitor offered
seven cattle as bride-wealth; only for a divorced woman would that number be acceptable”
Thus, avoiding humiliation that can be caused by absence of virginity and economic loss
could be factors that would push families to continue practicing FGM. Besides, as noted by
Boddy (Gibb, 1996) Women’s bodies are icons and repositories of community values and
morality, conceived of in highly localized terms. From this Gibb (1996) concluded that morality
is maintained through various metaphors of enclosure and fertility including infibulations, the
physical restriction on women's mobility and the symbolic reduction of their visibility through
Studying FGM, therefore, is like studying, for instance, religious myths or some symbolic
acts such as sacrifice practices or witchcraft. If someone studies these acts out of their context
they will look bizarre, irrational, childish or fantastical. So one way to resolve the problem
related with FGM is enabling the community to get out of poverty and taking measures that
On the 40th day the baby is taken to Aw Abdul Qadir Jailan, or Aw Abadir or Ai Aabida
for haras mowta ziara, symbolizing the end of haras gar. The ziara makers are the new mother
with her baby, her mother and friends. “They take sirri and bun (roasted coffee beans), a kittle of
qutti qahwah (milk tea made from stewed coffee leaves), chat and incense” (Gibb, 1997c, p.
235) as expression of symbolic values of achievement. When she returns from her visit or ziara
122
the curtain is removed to announce the end of haras gar and her return to her abode as a mature
woman.
Marriage
Until the age of five the child spends much of his time with his mother. Then, to learn
Quran, poems and mason and how to wave baskets (in the case of a girl) they join the Quran Gey
or Madrasa. After graduation either they join higher education or the girls wave Harari baskets,
which are very expensive, while the boys either join farming or commerce. Those who continue
their Islamic education at kabir gar between Maghreb and Isha prayer serve, after completion, as
kabir, Qadi, or Diwan (registrar) in the Shera Courts. Boys marry when they secure a job.
Upon acquiring a job, the boy with the help of his family, looks for a family that has a
mature girl. Such a family keeps a carpet on wantef murad; a place where carpets are kept
symbolizing the presence of a daughter ready to marry. If two are kept it means there are two
girls, etc. If there are none it means that family does not have a girl at a marriageable age. Thus,
the behavior of a family looking for a mature girl for its son is regulated by wantef murad
depending on whether a carpet is kept, through which the girl’s family is declaring its intention.
Depending on the information acquired, the boy’s family undertakes inquiry about the ahli, the
kinship of the girl’s family. Most of the time the first inquiry is made about the girl’s mother as it
is assumed that ‘a good mother brings up good girl’. Usually this inquiry is done by women; as
Waldron (1975b, p. 21) stated, “to make one’s knowledge about ahli (kinship) complete one has
to resort to his/her mother or other close female relative informants, for women, particularly old
123
When satisfied with their findings the boy’s family asks the neighbors to request the
girl’s family to fix a date for them to appear in person. The nearest relatives of the boy go to the
girl’s home on the date fixed. After welcoming them the girl’s family excuses the messengers to
leave telling them they will respond after discussing the matter with other relatives. Then they
On the other hand, if the private talk is made between the two fathers, the girl’s father, to
know about the boy, would say, let me talk to my wife. The girl’s mother, too, will give similar
excuse to the boy’s mother. If the boy and his family meet the requirement, a date is fixed for the
boy’s family to come with kusha chat (Fiancé chat) to fix a date for Zagan (date of engagement).
These days, though the participation of the parents and relatives are pertinent, some
changes have taken place. In old days the arrangements were totally made by the families. These
days, however, the future couples know each other and discuss their future even before
engagement. While in the first case the love and respect wives had for their husbands was
dominant, in the latter case mutual respect and love is prevalent. The introduction of modern
education and attending of females to the schools, the exposure to other cultures, etc. probably
Hence, while in old days value of obedience was regulating the relations between
husband and wife, values of mutual respect and love are prevalent these days. Hence, if the girl
and the boy have an earlier acquaintance each family arranges the date for the zagan in
consultation with the girl and the boy. On that day the boy’s family delivers gifts, bride’s money,
i.e. dowry and kusha chat. The kusha chat is distributed to all adult family members, relatives,
72
Personal experience
124
Nikah is a procedure to legalize marriage. In Harari community the process is referred to
as Nikah Muggad. The researcher observed and video recorded four Nikah Muggad. In three
cases he accompanied the future Aroz, the groom, while in one instant the future Arozit, the
bride. The first zagan would be discussed briefly to inform overall process of legalizing marriage
in Harari community.
The Nikah was tied on behalf of Muhammad Berkhedle, a civil servant living in Harar.
The Nikah was tied on Maria Ahmed73 who lived in Dire Dawa. On the group’s arrival at
Maria’s home the induchach (ladies) from her mother’s Jamaa or afocha members,74 welcomed
the group with ululate. Entering the room the group sat at the left side of the room on the nadaba
while the hosts took the right side seat according to Harari tradition. The Qadi, who accompanied
Muhammad instructed him to sit by him. Maria’s father also was seated on the right side of the
Qadi. The Qadi, as introduction started the ceremony in the name of Allah, and said “dejna!”
meaning “We have arrived!” Repeating the same supplication made by the Qadi the elder one
The Qadi continued saying “qahetkhuw Maria Ahmedu lijizina Muhammad Berkhedle le
Nikah tashnu nale dejna!” meaning “We arrived to request your daughter Maria Ahmed’s hand
for our son, Muhammad Berkhedle!” The same elder responded saying “rekhabu!” meaning
“your request is accepted!” Following that the Qadi made duwaa. Joined by everybody who
attended he closed the duwaa with the first chapter of the Quran, i.e. Suratul Alfatiha.
After he requested the host to accept the gifts and allow him to make Nikah, for Br.
2,000.00 Mahr in cash turning to Maria’s father and shaking his right hand with his two hands,
the Qadi requested authorization from him to tie Nikah on his daughter Maria Ahmed on his
73
It is sad to know that she died while giving birth on 2013 at Jugal Hospital in Harar.
74
Jamaa and afocha are social institutions that assist each member when wedding takes place and death occurs to
family member
125
behalf for Br 2,000.00 cash Mahr. The father authorized him. Reading certain verses from the
Quran and quoting Hadith the Qadi took Muhammad’s hand and said to Muhammad “Ankahtuka
aw zewejtuka benti Ahmed, Maria Ahmed be-Maher Br 2,000. “I hereby married you to Maria
Ahmed for Br. 2,000 Mahr cash as per the authority her father conferred upon me”. The Qadi
advised Muhammad to say “qabiltu” “I accepted”, which Muhammad repeated. Then the Qadi
concluded the ritual with duwaa requesting Allah to make that marriage like the marriage of
While the Mahr was given to the father, other gifts were handed over to the women who
were anxiously waiting in the backyard. Receiving the gifts, the women ululated. Immediately
sweets, soft drinks and other foods were served to all who attended the ceremony. Part of Kusha
chat was distributed among the guests who would chew part of it at their home and distribute the
remaining part among relatives who could not attend the ceremony. The part that was sent to the
induchach would be distributed among the relatives together with pieces of Halawa (sweet).
The distribution of the kusha chat symbolizes two things: both families sharing their
happy moment with all whom they have sent the chat to. Second it serves as a deterrent to those
who might have intention to ask for the girl’s hand. In bygone days, once a girl was engaged,
whenever she went out of her house, she put on a dress decorated with kusha buruq, i.e. a dress
decorated with a design that would indicate that she was already engaged. That dress was a
symbol of engagement. These days in addition to the delivery of chat, both fiancée and fiancé
put on “a wedding ring, both through its shape and the value attached to its constituent metal,
carries a suggestion and a promise of a precious never-ending affection ring” (Smith, 1952,
p.14). The chat, kusha buruq or the ring as symbols encompass value of security to regulate the
126
In all Zagan ceremonies the Qadi is paid for his service. He accompanies the future
groom and goes to the future bride’s home to tie Nikah. Entering the house the Qadi opens the
ceremony with duwaa and then announces the presence of the group and requests the bride’s
father to allow him to tie Nikah, which the father permits. The aroz puts on a hat called Aroz
keloyta, (groom’s hat), that distinguishes him from his companions and drinks a cup of milk
offered by the host. The gifts (sweets and perfume) and Halawa are packed in attractive
containers while the kusha chat is wrapped in a shawl on which Br. 100, referred to as Ay
Ladies ululate on the arrival, when the Qadi legalizes the marriage and on the departure
of the groom’s party. Hence, the ululations symbolize the joy ladies enjoy under different
circumstances. The first one symbolizes the safe arrival of the future groom and his group. The
second and the third signify the legalization of the marriage and the successful completion of the
ceremony, respectively. By doing so the women always herald at which stage is the ceremony.
All three stages are an expression of values of achievement reflected in the success scored at
each stage.
Belachu, Wedding
The fiancé’s family used to deliver firewood loaded on a donkey to the fiancée’s family.
This symbolized a request to fix a date for the belachu. If the fiancée’s family delayed setting a
date for lack of resources the fiancé’s family delivered a bull and a sack of sorghum to symbolize
how desperate they are for the belachu to take place. Once the date is arranged both families start
preparations. Thus the bride’s and groom’s mothers, accompanied by their immediate relatives,
127
visit a week ahead of the date set for the belachu, i.e. Saturday75 Ai Abida. They take with them
sirri, bun (coffee), qahwah, 76 milk, honey, banana, chat, incense and cash.
This visit, referred to as belachu ziara, is made to receive duwaa from the murid77 of the
Ai Abida shrine who blesses the belachu saying “Lechi Abida tashoqalesh!” meaning let Abida
work for you! Let her be busy and carry out everything on your behalf!” (Gibb, 1997c, p. 233)
The ziara and blessing boost their moral and make them confident that their belachu would be
successful. Thus, it could be said the Ai Abdi Shrine as a symbol “carries strong emotional
charges: it has evocative, stimulative power for the participants in the ritual experience an
On Thursday, following those visits the bride (arozit) with her close friends (henna
gelach) invite people to her wedding by making door-to-door visit called aruz mawalel (bride
visit. See figure 11). The visited homes provide their guests with sweets and soft drinks. They
also serve arozit with a cup of milk. The guests either sip very small or large amounts from the
soft drink depending on the number of houses they have visited and/or the means of traveling
they have used, while they take the sweets to the belachu gar and share it among themselves.
Some interpret the sweets and the soft drinks as an expression of happiness and sweet life the
75
Saturday is a date set to visit Ai Abida. Personal experience
76
Qahwah is tea made from milk and roasted coffee leaf.
77
The murid is descendant and caretaker of the shrine. In this case the murid is a lady
128
Figure 11: Aruz Mawalel
Milk has a significant role in the social life of Hararis. As Muslims they share a belief
that the Prophet Muhammad on “the miraculous night flight from Mecca to Jerusalem, Isra,’ and
the ascent to Heaven, mi’reg” (Gori, 2010, p. 52) was hosted by Jibril (Gabriel) who held a cup
of milk with his right hand and a cup of alcohol with the left hand. The Prophet preferred the
milk. Following that example, milk for the Hararis is a symbol through which one expresses
one’s respect for his guest. Moreover, it is a symbol for virtues, such as luck, prosperity, long
When one drinks milk, the du’a one performs differs from that one performs after eating
any other food. When one finishes drinking milk one says ‘Allahumma Zidna lebanan wala
tenques aleyna Abadan.’ ‘Oh God give us more milk and never reduce it from us’. For other
129
food the du’a is ‘Allahumma bariklena fimma rezeqtana wanta kheyror-raziqin.’ ‘Oh God bless
what You provide us with for You are the most provider.’
Hence, whenever the Hararis make ziara to the shrines either they take milk or qahwah.
Furthermore, during the holy month of Ramadan after people break their fast they pay visit to
each other or they give calls. The visitor asks his host, “Have you drunk water?” The host
replies, “No we have drunk milk not water.” Actually, it is advisable to break fasting by eating
palm dates. If that is not available or affordable, which is true most of the time, water is drunk to
break fasting. In spite of that, the reply is “we have taken milk not water.”
This conversation and other acts reveal the importance milk has in the life of Hararis.
Milk is offered to the bride and groom at different occasions. Moreover, to neutralize the effect
of chat husbands are offered milk at night. Harari indochach take milk along when they go to
express their condolence to the mourners. Hararis believe children must drink milk before
sleeping. All these actions signify the importance of milk in the social life of the Hararis. It is a
symbol that connects the spiritual world with the secular one, the past with future and the old
Marriage Ceremonies
The mother’s afocha members start their activity early Saturday morning calling each
other. As narrated by Abbay Atiqa and Gibb (1997c) while roaming, they sing and sniff the
aromatic rahan, the Arabic perfume in the narrow streets of Jugal calling each member from
their compound to join them. The singing and related ceremonies continue until they enter the
belachu gar compound where they contribute money referred to as “afocha mahaleq” or
“mutabeq mahsha mahaleq” meaning Afocha money or money contributed to compact the
mixture of honey and sesame seed to produce sweet. These acts of the afocha members are based
130
on values of helpfulness. The three major events with their corresponding symbols, however, are
The belachu starts with the slaughtering of one or two oxen on Saturday. While the
butcher slices manageable pieces of meat off the carcass, some indochach afocha or jamaa
members carry it to the kitchen where (big metal) cauldrons are simmering over fires built in the
open air either in belachu gar or a neighbor’s compound, depending on the availability of space.
While some of them chop tomatoes, and prepare onions, garlic and chili peppers, others attend to
the fire and stir the contents of the large cauldrons. Meanwhile, some women afocha members
The large kidneys are prepared and given to the aruz. The intestine is used to prepare
waqallim (Harari sausage) to be consumed by the aroz, arozit, and their friends while they stay at
aruz gar, 79 or served to the guests on Sunday lunch or inay gabata. To prepare the waqallim, in
early times the stomach lining and intestine were washed at Aw Omer River by a group of
women who sang and danced while marching to and from the river. These days, however, they
do the washing while singing and dancing in the compound of the belachu gar. Meanwhile, the
arozit with her henna gelach, afocha and jamaa members and young boys and girls dance and
Henna ukhat is prepared carefully by the arozit’s mother from red beef stew and sent to
the aroz’s mother accompanied with a ceremony called ala, ala which few words would be said
about the folklore as narrated by Kabir Abdulmuheiman. Henna ukhat got its name from the
78
Personal experience
79
Honey moon room or bride suite
131
color of the Henna plant which is reddish brown. Before telling about ala, ala it is worthy to
recount the folk tale about how sending henna ukhat to the groom’s mother was resumed.
Once upon a time, a girl from a wealthy family fell in love with a boy from a poor family
and refused to marry no one but the boy. Her family finally agreed. On Saturday night the girl’s
father, while passing incidentally by the door noticed that no ceremony was undergoing in the
compound of the boy’s family. He rushed back to his home and put an order for special stew
with ukhat and instructed a group of people to take it with one gourd of milk to the boy’s
belachu gar, singing and dancing on their way. They spent the night dancing and singing at the
boy’s house. That ceremony continued till these days. The aroz’s family sends words of
appreciation if they can’t afford delivering four donkeys’ load of firewood, referred to as
mazangna inchi, meaning morning firewood, to prepare Sunday breakfast and lunch. It
symbolizes the appreciation of the boy’s family. Hence, we can see the two families’ relations
Henna Maqaba
On their way to take the henna ukhat they say “Allah! Allah! Allahu ya Allah! Ajil Binesri
WA bill Feraji!” singing hymn with lyrics praising Allah” (Tarsitani & Tarsitani, 2010, p. 6).
This ritual is based on a folklore narrated as follows: a long time ago the Hararis had bestowed a
girl as homage to a python that lived at a locality called Aw Kelka where they fetched water for
their daily use. Every family was obliged to bestow a girl, if it had one, so the python would
leave the community in peace and abstain from harming the community.
Following the prior arrangement made by the community, elders came and informed a
certain mother to make her only daughter ready so that they might come at dawn to hand the girl
over to the python. The mother, who was actually preparing her daughter to hand her to a
132
husband, spent the whole night begging God saying “Allah! Allah! Ya Allah! Allahu, Ajil Binesri
Wabil Feraji” God! I beg you to send an eagle and give me victory. God responded to her
request, sending before dawn a giant eagle (Binesri) so big that when it flew over Harar it
covered the whole city with its wings. The eagle snatched the python that was so big that when
standing on a hill top and curving itself into the air it looked like a rainbow not only in color but
in size, and freed the woman and the community for good.
While the eagle flew it to the north of Harar, the python, struggling for its life, scratched
the big mountain with its tail and marked W or Shadda WA Madda atop that mountain (See
figure 12). The mountain is, therefore, known as W mountain by the elite, Shadda WA Madda
Seri by common Hararis and Qundudo by the Oromos. So the ceremony of sending henna ukhat
accompanying it with Alla, Alla is requesting God to protect the arozit and aroz from any kind of
133
Figure 12: W Mountain shaped by the Python
Immediately after the female families leave the aroz’s home, the female members of the groom
go to the arozit’s home. The aroz attends, but remains outside the house while his female
relatives proceed to the gidir nadaba where the arozit sits surrounded by her henna gelach and
paint the Henna into the arozit’s hand, who at least engages in mock protest. As noted by Ayele
(1999) it could be a seal of approval by the aroz’s relatives. Meanwhile, the arozit’s family
offers a cup of milk to the aroz which is a symbol that “stands for purity, prosperity, and
134
Aroz Megba, Wedding Day Proper
Early Sunday morning, the women afocha or jamaa members prepare haris, a kind of
porridge with red meat for breakfast for men afocha members who perform mawlid, the most
diffused collection of sacred texts performed to celebrate the birth of the Prophet (Nabi Mawlud )
as well as other Islamic feasts and weddings as noted by Tarsitani & Tarsitani (2010). When the
mawlud is over, lunch is served to the mawlid performers and guests who either take a short rest
After lunch the arozit either goes to the hair dresser’s salon or calls a beautician to her
home that makes her ready for aruz megba. The aroz, who is assisted by his best men, dresses in
his best suit. When information is received that the arozit is ready the aroz, accompanied by his
best men, friends, and his father and father’s friends, goes to the arozit’s house. The elders from
both families sit on chairs facing each other at the entrance of gidir gar leaving a narrow track
where the arozit’s brother gives her away to the aroz. The arozit sits on gidir nadaba surrounded
by her henna gelach, families, relatives and friends. House hold items, including the carpet the
mother places on the wantef murad, are displaced, counted and registered in the presence of
When this ceremony is over the arozit and aroz (see figure 13) accompanied by friends
and relatives, go to a hotel or any other place with landscape gardening to have photographs and
then entertain their guests with a no-alcohol cocktail party if they arranged one. They cut a
wedding cake and put a slice of it in one another’s mouth wishing sweet life for one another
before the pieces are distributed to the guests. Similarly, as noted by Gluckman (1964), “the Lozi
bride and bridegroom eat the porridge off a stone and see therein a symbol of a hope that the
135
Figure 13: Arozit Wa Aroz
Singing and dancing follows until the couple leave for their aruz gar where the arozit either
might proceed to kirtet, curtained with bamboo that symbolizes togetherness and bestowing
blessings for the newlywed couple (Abdi Khalil, 2007) take off the wedding dress and put on her
gown. Or she may, with her wedding dress, join the aroz and others at gidir nadaba to recite
Yasin and Tabarak from the Quran. Upon the conclusion the aroz gives du’a to those who have
not yet married. Then the arozit retires to the kirtet where she is helped by her henna gelach to
According to Abbay Atiqa, two women still married from her husband’s family enter the
kirtet and ask the arozit to lick some honey from their fingers or small tea spoon, which she does
after mock resistance. This action, which is referred to as dus malhas (licking the honey, see
136
figure 14) “symbolizes the blessing of her family life to become sweet and delicious as honey,
Bakal Muz
Monday is a day for the bride to prove she has been a virgin till last night. Hence, in
earlier days the aroz’s best man would, in the early morning, let a calf to bellow roaming in the
arozit’s family compound to symbolize the arozit’s virginity and consummation of the marriage.
That symbol was substituted by a white handkerchief stained with blood, which would be sent to
the bride’s mother. These days a red flower with a tray of halawa is sent to the bride’s mother
137
Receiving the symbol, the mother ululates and delightfully displays it. On the next day,
Tuesday, inay gabata, Harari food composed of waqallim (Harari sausage) and Tuftuf, (a light
Ukhat made from white wheat flour) is sent from the bride’s mother to aruz gar. These days
some families send boiled rice with sausage. Aba Atiqa said it is taken first to the aroz’s family
home to be admired and blessed before it is delivered to Aroz Gar by Afocha members of both
families.
If she is not a virgin nothing is sent to the bride’s mother and when the inay gabata arrives at
aruz gar it is left either in the middle of the compound, or under a drain pipe, or, as Assefa
Abbebe (1988) wrote, it is given to beggars and dogs. This symbolic value of conformity
(Schwartz, 1994) regulates the pre-marital sexual life of gey qahat, as it restrains gey qahat from
violating social expectation or norms opposing pre-marital sex, adultery and incest. Further, it
also opposes the entire phenomena that may lead to or provoke pre-marital sex, such as
In the afternoon the bride’s mother sends a bundle of gifts called bakal muz consisting of
banana, incense burner, incense, a broom, eraz moday, chewing gum, a kettle, a pan, and water
jug for ablution. By sending these items she is directing her daughter’s post-marital life as it can
While she is in her aruz gar the arozit burns incense when the aroz’s friends perform
Zikri. To attract her husband and arouse his sexual feelings she fumigates herself with incense.
When the mother sends her daughter the incense and the girgira80 it is a symbol to encourage her
daughter to consummate the marriage, of which she would have disapproved before marriage.
Hence, while the handkerchief with blood regulates pre-marital sexual behavior the girgira
138
Hetch (1980) attributed coffee ceremonies and incense burning to Amhara customs.
However, the practice in aroz gar and other places, such as awach, demonstrate, otherwise. The
incense burning following the Mekhrib Azan that had been practiced by Harari ayach from time
immemorial also confirms the contrary. The incense burner is either produced in Harar or
brought to Harar by the Somali traders. Hence, it is very unlikely for the Hararis to borrow the
Aroz Mowta Wa Gufta Muggad, Ending Honey Moon And Entering Womanhood81
The arozit and aroz spend three days being looked after by their families and friends or
until the marriage is consummated at their aruz gar. On Thursday the couple, with their friends,
is invited to lunch by the arozit’s family where they take off their shoes outside the gidir gar to
express their reverence for the in-laws. While they are enjoying their lunch the henna gelach and
sisters of the arozit hide one single shoe from each guest to return them only after receiving a
pay (see figure 15). The aroz pays the highest payment for his and the arozit’s pair of shoes.
Then the total is shared among those who conceal the shoes.
81
The following is based on personal experience and observation
139
Figure 15: The ransom collected to solicit the pairs of shoes
When the lunch ceremony is over the father-in-law gives the aroz a shawl with a red
stripe referred to as sati baqla. While some historians say the gift is in remembrance of the newly
wed 700 martyred grooms of the Battle of Chelenko (Abdi-Khalil, 2007), Kabir Abdulmuheiman
argues that the red stripe is in remembrance of the children who once were massacred at a Quran
Gey by bandits.
Whichever is true, Hararis use that symbol to remember their martyr in the middle of
happiness and by painting every day a gidir gar floor with qeh afar. As noted by Gibb (1997) it
also “reminds the Gey Usu’s sons and daughters… to marry, to reproduce and perpetuate the gey
usu as a group and also makes a lesson of the virtue of fighting when the integrity of the group is
threatened” (p. 56). In this sense it could also be a symbol of commitment by the young to fulfill
140
Prior to the couple leaving for a dinner invitation to the family of the aroz, the female
relatives from both families arrive at aruz gar to perform an act and ritual that transforms the
arozit from girlhood to womanhood. The ceremony is called Sheeney, Sheeney (See figure 16).
It is the ritual preparation of hairstyle and the dress a married woman wears for the first time in
her life at the final day of the wedding ceremony. The following is taken from a video record of
The ritual starts with the preparation of the bride’s hair. They sing one verse for each
separate stage in the preparation of her hair and dress. First her hair is parted in the middle
drawing the line between the half for which her-in-laws take responsibility and the remaining
half upon which her female relatives lay claim. Each family sings and combs and ties a pony tail
and then straightens the hair on one side. Black cloth is wrapped around the ends of the pony
tails and fashioned into round black that are known as gufta. “This was achieved by dividing the
hair into two balls at the nape of the neck and covering the entire head with a hairnet to keep it in
Female relatives, from both families who stand on either side of the seated arozit, sing a
formulaic song in which the bride’s side boasts about the golden girl (ziqeh qahat) they gave to
the groom’s family. In turn the groom’s family boasts about the golden boy (ziqeh liji) they gave
to the bride’s family. Gibb (1997) interprets the song as an indication that the bride is now part
of both families and each claims the right to teach her how to dress like a married gey indoch
(woman) by placing a huge black cotton dress over the bride’s clothes, the traditional dress of the
married woman known as tey eraz, i.e. black cloth. The arozit adds this garment to her wardrobe
as a symbol of her new status. Here one could assume both families together teach the arozit
141
Figure 16: Sheeney, Sheeney: transferred to womanhood
As soon as the ceremony is over, the couple, accompanied by their friends and the women
afocha members, marches to the aroz’s house for dinner singing the Ai Fatima. Gibb (1997) says
in singing the Ai Fatima the mothers celebrate the new status of their daughter as well as the
Friday morning the couple leaving their aruz gar to start living in hatam gar,82
traditionally where the aroz’s mother provides special food which is referred to as gabata
khodon for a year or more. At the same time the daughter-in-law weaves a basket called hamat
mot to give it to her mother-in-law as a gift. The mother-in-law always takes ukhat in the hamat
mot to a house where afocha member dies. That is the time and space to express her satisfaction
82
In old days the couples lived in a room provided in the compound of the family of the aroz for one year or more
until his elder brother got married supplied with food and other necessities. This act was called sabata wata. It is
related with the aroz.
142
with her daughter-in-law who proved to be an elite gey qahat, as basket work is a refined art and
is a symbol of identity for Hararis. The mother-in-law and the hatamit regulate and foster their
relations by exchanging gifts. After a year both families expect a child who after being nurtured
and attaining certain age is made to join either the traditional or modern school as it can be seen
next.
143
CHAPTER FIVE: THE RELEVANCY OF VALUES IN SELF-REGULATION OF
HARARI EDUCATION
Introduction
Education is one of the vital instruments to develop the individuals and the society which,
should enjoy continuous sufficiency and prosperity. How successful the society is in achieving
these goals is dependent on the values the education system is promoting, which varies from time
to time and place to place. This chapter will try to find out what have been the educational
systems of Hararis and the values which they have been promoting, as well as those relations
Harar had gained a reputation as a Muslim learning center in East Ethiopia (Waldron,
1978, Hecht, 1992). The city functioned as an important center of Islam for at least 400 years.
This role served to connect Harar with internal Ethiopia, the Horn of Africa, and indirectly the
world (Waldron, 1978). Hence, besides being a commercial center that linked central Ethiopia
with the outside world, Harar served as a center for education with outward-looking character.
The institutions of learning have been Quran Gey, mosques, awach, ashir gar and
madrasah83 the “most prominent Muslim School” (Hecht, 1992, p. 6). Amashna was constituted
for a makeup class or illiteracy campaign for gey induchach who could not attend regular schools
for various reasons. The amashna was mainly run by high school students, senior madrasah
83
Personal observation
144
People who graduated from those institutions had a different title and were serving the
community at different levels and spheres of life. Those who completed Quran gey and learned
under strict supervision of known kabir or Qadi in ashir gar, mosques or awach would serve as
Qadi or Diwan (registrar). This was also a requirement to serve as principal teacher or kabir in
Quran gey. Completing some chapters of the Quran sufficed to be nominated as tit kabir. After
the establishment of Gey Madrasa individuals either started to attend this institution in lieu of
Historical facts demonstrate the importance Hararis gave to education and the values
promoted accordingly. The questions this chapter raises and answers are how was the system
built and what values have been promoted by that system? Were those values discriminatory
against women and non-Hararis? In other words, were they inclusive or exclusive? Would those
values have had universal character? An attempt will be made to find out the importance of
This chapter has three major parts. The first part discusses Islamic education in the
mosques, offices, and higher learning institutions in historical perspective. The second part
discusses Quran Gey in old days and in contemporary Harar. The last part discusses Gey
Madrasa in historical perspective and how new madrasas are developed. In the meantime, the
To understand the stages the education of Harari has gone through, it is worthy to state
very briefly the historical background of Islamic Education. Hence, the first Islamic education
was offered at Prophet Muhammad’s home to avoid Quraysh persecution. Then, mosques served
as learning centers after migration to Medina followed by kuttab (in English means the office).
145
Finally, madrasah came. In short, the history of Islamic learning actually begins at home, before
moving to mosques and then to the kuttab. And it culminated with madrasah.
Teaching In Houses
When Prophet Muhammad started teaching Islam, he and his followers were persecuted
by his own tribes’ men, the Quraysh. To avoid that, he used to meet and teach his companions at
his companions’ and his own house. One of the companions whose house was used for that
purpose was al-Arqam ibn al-Arqa (Al Kandari, 2004). In that house he mainly taught his
followers the rules of Islam, for instance how to pray and how to recite the Quran. As pointed out
by Al Kandari (2004), since homes are a place of tranquility, education started to be offered in
the mosque where the Prophet Mohammad would convene people to listen to his revelations and
their interpretation.
Teaching In Mosques
Mosques have been playing various and significant roles in the lives of Muslims. They
have been serving not only as learning centers but centers to organize the political, social,
educational, and religious life of the Muslim Community, even though emphasis has been given
mainly to religious matters, especially teaching of the Quran. Nevertheless, “the teaching process
philosophy, grammar, literature, history, mathematics, astrology, and the natural sciences (Al
Kandari, 2004, p. 9). Most of the teachers in mosques were considered to be Imams or ‘ulama,’
religious scholars.
As pointed out by Tamuri et al. (2012) and Abdel-Hady (2010) Quba’ was the first
mosque built in al-Madina, after the Prophet Muhammad migrated from Mecca in the year 12
A.H/ 633 A.D (Haykal, 2008). As noted by Al Kandari (2004) it was also the first mosque to
146
serve as a teaching center. She further informs that Amr ibn al-‘As, which was built in Cairo in
21 A.H/ 642 A.D and the Umayyad in Damascus, built in 86-96 A.H/ 705-714 A.D were the
As pointed out by Akkari (2004) Quranic schools are referred to by different names in
different regions. While in Tunisia, Algeria and Egypt they are Kuttab, in Kuwait, they are in
their plural form, Katatib. Nevertheless, as the use of the term Katatib is clearly linked to the
development of a culture of literacy, it is usually used to name a small learning unit (single
classroom) for relatively young children or a type of beginners’ or primary school (Abdel-Hady,
2010). Hence, as it is the basic education institution in Islamic contexts it can be assumed that it
was widespread in Islamic lands. It is normally attached to a mosque and located in any sort of
It can be assumed, therefore, it is a mosque’s imam who would teach Quran, Hadith, and
basic literacy skills in Katatib. Children would also learn how to pronounce the words of the
Arabic language, and how to understand the meaning of Islamic rules (Alkaaf et al., 2011). To
teach in these institutions, therefore, one has to have knowledge in Quran, the foundations of
Madrasah
Islam started to expand outside Saudi Arabia. Probably, following that expansion and the
schooling side by side with those very traditional types of educational institutions. According to
January 23, 2007, Congressional Research Service (CRS) report the Nizamiyya was one of the
first madrasas built in Baghdad in the eleven century AD. Al-Kandari (2004) reflects a similar
147
view. As pointed out by Ihsanoglu (2004) the primary objective of those Nizamiyya was to offer
instruction in fiqh.
As the madrasas were established by the government one can assume the allocation of
budgets and supervision by the government. Moreover, probably teachers could be offered the
necessary training both on the subjects they teach and moral codes to govern their behavior.
Assessment and evaluation methods to account for their work were also put in place. Probably
they were paid salaries and certifications for their teaching services.
Another educational institution in Islamic history is the Dar al-Hikma, or the house of
wisdom, comparable to the universities and community colleges which are today common.
Some, however, say Dar al-Hikma was a research institution constructed during the Fatimid
Caliphates in 297-561H/909-1171 CE. (Nizam, et al, 2009). As pointed out by Nizam, et al.,
(2009) one of the most popular Dar al-Hikma or Dar al-ilm (house of knowledge) was opened in
Cairo in 395 A.H. / 1005 A.D, by the Fatimid Caliph Imam al-Hakim accommodated in the
As a research institution, it was probably a venue where scholars met each other to
discuss their opinions and knowledge. In addition, those places were where one could find both
original authors and translators of scientific works in Greek, Sanskrit and Persian (Nizam, et al.,
2009). Or it could also be considered as a very specialized educational institution that was not
restricted to religious studies, but also taught philosophy as well as other sciences. It is plausible,
therefore, to think as a variety of subjects, both original and translation, were available, and
probably students with a wide variety of interests, such as religious, medical, or scientific, were
gathered in it.
148
Next, how much of these have been practiced in Harar will be discussed very briefly.
First, basic facts about Harari education, establishment of Quran Gey, the old and the new, and
finally Gey Madrasah from its inception to coming of new madrasas in Harar will be discussed.
Simultaneously, the values which have been promoted by these institutions will be expounded.
Some say it is mysterious (Waldron, 1984) how Hararis have preserved themselves and
survived this odd situation (small Semites surrounded by Cushites) for so long a time. Caulk
(1977) in resolving that mystery has to say the survival of the Semitic-speaking Muslim
townsmen of Harar, which were 30,000 in the midst of 2,000,000 Cushitic, could be attributed to
economic interdependence, the awe the newcomers felt for the town's saints, and the greater
Waldron (1984), and other scholars have discussed some of the methods Hararis used to
maintain themselves. On top of those institutions discussed by those scholars it could be assumed
education was another institution Hararis used for that purpose. While Ullendore (1960)
described Hararis as agents who spread Islam into Southwestern Ethiopia, Hussein Ahmed
(2010) portrayed “Harar as the centre from which Sufism in the form of the Qadiri order was
introduced into Wallo” (p. 112). Nicholl (1997) depicted Harar as an outpost of the faith in
Africa. Even after its 60 years of incorporation into Christian Ethiopia “it remains the principal
exponent of Islamic civilization in Ethiopia” (Ullendore, 1960, p. 100). Hararis did that either by
sending their ulama to the place where the students resided or bringing them to Harar.
Thus, the Harari Sheikhs used to travel with merchants, then settle in certain areas and
teach Islam. Those who were not approached by the Sheikhs used to travel to Harar either to seek
scholarship or request for a Sheikh who would then go back to the place where they came and
149
teach them. According to kabir Abdulmuheiman, 84 in 1577 people from Afar came to Harar and
requested for someone who would teach them Islam. Sheikh Abdurrahman Selmanu volunteered
and went to Afar, married an Afar woman and settled there to teach Islam. It is not, therefore,
surrounding Harar by sending teachers and Qadis who found mosques at different localities such
as Fadis, Falana, north of town, Gara Mullata and beyond Ramis river. Moreover, those sheikhs
following the practice of Amir Muhammad ibn Ali became ilmangosa that allowed them to
establish themselves as a tolerated class of teachers and guaranteed the continuation of the spread
of Islam through their descendants as fresh recruits. As asserted by Trimingham (1952), Hararis
taught Islam to the Ala, Nole, Jarso, Ittu and Enia Oromo tribes.
That trend continued in recent Harari history. The researcher studied his madrasah in a
town called Beddesa, about three hundred km west of Harar, where the madrasah and the
mosque were established by the Hararis. Hence, anywhere they hold, Hararis established
mosques and madrasas. They did the same in Dire Dawa, Eastern and Western Hararghe.85
According to Kamil Sheriff86 even the first 5 Qadis in Addis Ababa were Hararis.
Thus, the sheikhs who left Harar for good and instructed Islam to those who lived around
and far away from Harar were also ambassadors of Hararis. Hence, those institutions were used
by Hararis to extend their influence so that their presence could be felt beyond the walled city
through education. Hararis exported, along with those institutions, “Arabic pious literature on
faith, mysticism and Islamic law produced by Harari scholars” (Hussein, 2010, p. 115). Hussein
84
Interview on 01/27/2013 in Harar
85
Personal experience
86
Interview on 06/03/2013 in Addis Ababa
150
(2010) further noted that Hararis also sent their children to study advanced Islamic religious
science under the local Shaikh at centers of Islamic learning in South Wallo.
Kabir Abdulmuheiman87 stated that groups of itinerant students, who were referred to as
masjid gale (mosque hibernators), came from Somali to learn in Harar. They would stay at
mosques arranged for teaching purposes till they completed their learning. It was a sort of
scholarship. Those people, returning to their abode, would serve their community in various
fields. Hence, Hararis used Islamic teaching as an instrument to pacify and smooth relations with
the people adjoining them by upholding values of peace, harmony and tranquility among various
groups. Moreover, as Hararis have tried to reach out to non-Hararis and make education
available to others, it could be said that values such as altruism, equity, diversity, and social
justice had been enhanced by Hararis through education. As noted by Akkari (2004) opening of
the Koranic School to all social groups and cultures makes this an institution of ‘basic education’
While Burton (1894) was in Harar he came across kabir Yonis and kabir Khalil teaching
the whole day at their house using Harari language as a medium to teach materials written in
Arabic. It is worthy to note that teaching in one’s mother tongue is, as noted by Waithaka,
(1992), “to provide a means by which the learner understands the value and concerns of his
society” (p. 143). Hence, Hararis used education as an instrument to transfer societal values to
87
Interview on 27/01/2013 in Harar
151
Establishment Of Quran Gey
This part discusses Quran Gey in old days when its establishment, as noted by
Abdulnassir Idris (1999), could be traced back as far as the coming of Islam to Harar. It is
believed that the first one was established at a place called Aw Quran Ge (the father Quran Gey).
Besides, shrine and mosques in and around Harar were serving as Quran Gey, too. The Quran
Gey is established in the compound of a Kabir who has both ample time and sufficient
knowledge of Arabic and Quran (Dowd, 1970). Wooden pillars as columns and grasses or Qara
(dry cane of sorghum) as roofs were used to build the Quran Gey88.
The Kabir is assisted in his teaching by tit kabir and gidir kabir. The former teaches the
ardwijach (junior students), who form a circle to learn through rote each Arabic letter till they
master it. 89 The teaching is accomplished at two levels: Harfi menqal, i.e. learning the Arabic
alphabet together with vowel indicators and Quran meqra, i.e. ability to read the Quran. The
gidir kabir, who is most of the time the son of the principal kabir, teaches, under a minimum
supervision of the kabir, the laqiyach (senior students). The kabir is also assisted in keeping
discipline by a few chosen students. Hence students engage in the teaching and administration of
the Quran gey at various levels governed by values of politeness, obedience, and honoring of
elders.
One of the teaching aids utilized in the Quran Gey is luh, i.e. a flat wooden slate which
serves both as a white board for the kabir and an exercise and handwriting book for the
ardwijach. Each ardwij possess one luh that is painted with barasa (white earth material) to turn
it white. The kabir writes on the luh using dibet: ink made from fine charcoal or soft soot from
olive tree stem mixed with water and cotton. To it is added kerabi, i.e. myrrh which makes the
88
Personal experience
89
Personal experience as student
152
ink shiny when it is applied on the luh using a pen called qalam that is made from bamboo
Those who learn together were referred to as ashidey, i.e. class-mates. While the juniors
were known as alef, the senior ones were referred to as laqi. There was no separate room for
each ashidey as lessons were given under one roof. The class was identified by a circle formed
by each ashidey. Zaimeche (2002), refers to these circles as Halaqat al-Ilm, or Halaqa for short,
The lessons were offered three times a day. The first lesson was in early morning. It is
called soza Quran Gey, i.e. morning lesson. It was not compulsory. The second lesson was
barcha Quran Gey. It was between 9:00 a.m. and noon: the time when each ardwij was
preparing for his lesson by painting his luh with barasa and drying it in the sun. If the day is
cloudy the students would beg wood (Quran inchi) from neighbors to build a fire and dry their
luh. Then the day’s lesson would be either written by the kabir or by the student, if he was a laqi
one. The third period was when each student recited what he learned in the second class session.
In all these periods the ardwijach could be in any of the following five levels in learning
the Quran. The first level: learning the Arabic alphabet and practicing handwriting. The
ardwijach at the second stage were expected to memorize the opening chapter of the Quran and
the Juz Amma, i.e. the third chapter of the Quran. The third level is learning up to the 19 th chapter
and completing the 20th chapter, i.e. Suratul Taha- Kafhaya. At this level if the ardwij
memorizes ten verses from Suratul Taha he celebrates what is called kafhaya matabeq.
90
Personal experience
153
The ardwij who attained the fourth level would learn by himself with little supervision
from the gidir kabir or the principal kabir. He can be nominated tit kabir. By the time he
completes Suratul Baqara he is promoted to the fifth level, which is referred to as qalam mesber,
Certain days of the week were allotted for certain activities. For instance, revision is
always done every morning from 6:00-7:00 a.m. The alef were not obliged to make the revision.
Weekly revision was also made every Tuesday in the morning. On that day, after the revision,
the laqiyach would go out and fetch for barasa and bamboo. This was referred to as barasa and
91
Personal experience
154
qalam gey. The barasa and the bamboo were to be delivered to the principal kabir who would
supply every student whenever the student had to prepare for the next lesson.
On Thursday students from one ashidey would call each other and go around collecting
either kerabi (myrrh) or money to buy the kerabi. They would roam around and beg shop owners
to give them kerabi. If the shop owner had one he would give it to them. If he did not he would
give them ten cents, which was referred to as khamis mahaleq, i.e. Thursday money to purchase
kerabi. After finishing collecting or buying the Kerabi they would divide it among themselves
equally. Hence, the community used to help students to enhance their welfare guided by the
values of helpfulness.
That was one way of establishing marignat (friendship) that Waldron (1975a) mentioned
as one of the institutions of Hararis. The students would also organize themselves into marign by
putting ukhat on a handkerchief and eating it together at a break time. This ceremony was
referred to as asri subat di mosha, i.e. putting snacks as one to eat together. After each student
gave one third of it to the kabir the rest would be contributed by each student, put on a
handkerchief which serves as a table and eaten by the marignach together. Harari children
learned the value of benevolence, expressed in helping one another, at this stage. The
handkerchief would serve in the military training of under aged children, which will be discussed
Where a student refused to join his ashidey, they would force him to join the group
saying: Muti! Muti! Akhira Way. It means roughly, the one who eats alone in this world will not
have friends after life. Or worldly, as noted by Davidson (1969 ) "Go the way that many people
go; if you go alone, you will have reason to lament” (p. 31). It is a value that promotes a sense of
community. Thus, the friendship that started at Quran Gey through collecting kerabi and
155
nurtured through sharing asri Subat is for life as Waldron (1975a) has stated. Thus, the Quran
Agri-Agri: One Of The Conventional Military Training Offered In The Quran Gey
Hararis fought against external enemies to carry on as a community. Once in history they
were able to unite the horn of Africa under the leadership of Imam Ahmed. One of the reasons
that they win in battles could be the military training offered at the Quran Gey that deserves
discussion. Students learned Agri-Agri- basic conventional military training at Quran Gey as a
compulsory military education attended by all male students (Abdullahi Mohammed, 1994). The
weapons utilized in this training were wand and shield. The training was accomplished as
Attendance was administered by the gidir or tit kabir. Students of all Quran Geys were
divided into two groups. The first group is made up of students from the Quran Geys situated in
the vicinity of Asmadin Bari (west) and Argoba Bari (east). The second group is formed by those
students from the Quran Geys situated in the vicinities of Badro Bari (south), Sukutat Bari
(south-east) and Assum Bari (north). The time for the training was from 3: 00-6:00 p.m. at a
locality called Aw Warrick, a shrine named after one of the saints. It is located on the road
outwardly adjacent to the northeastern part of the wall that stretches from the West to the East,
The time range for the training was eight days from the 12 th month of Hegira up to the
eve of Arafa when students attend only morning classes getting armed with their wands and
shields. When they finished morning classes they would gather at a certain place where they
would be given advice and instructions by their respective commanders referred to as faris
156
Before the actual fighting breaks out each group is organized into two lines. The senior
ones make up the advance line while the under aged who were supposed to keep spare wands
and follow praiseworthy fighters to replace instantly their broken wands and rearm those who
might face the chance of being disarmed as a consequence of a forceful strike from an opponent,
From the fight each participant would learn how to attack and force the enemy to
surrender. On the other hand, the other group would learn how to retreat without being
disorganized and render fierce resistance to the enemy by not allowing it to pass the Bari of their
quarter, for a successful pass through the Bari signifies the end of the day’s contest. At the end of
the day while the losers would return to their homes, the winners would go to their kabir (who
would bless them) and hand over the weapons they seized from their enemy after crossing
Before the students engaged in Agri-Agri training they would undergo other mini
trainings meant for the under aged ones. These trainings were Dulla-Dulla, Qutti-Qutti and
Qara-Qara. The first one was a training undertaken by students by using a rolled handkerchief
used as a table while eating their subat. They did that while the students were returning to their
home by slashing each other. The second type of training was the one which was undertaken
using a qutti, stem of a plant locally known as Kimatri (kabir Abdullahi92). Finally they used
Qara (sorghum cane) to undertake the third type of training. One can observe, compared with the
wand, all three objects used in the training cause no harm. Children fostered their marignat while
92
Interview on February 08, 2013 in Harar
157
The completion of memorizing and graduation from Quran Gey coincides with the
acquiring of basic military skills. Upon graduation the youths would join any of the five
hierarchical mogads which constitute the fighting force of the community as the continuation of
The Quran Gey was regulated at a different level and time by the kabir, the students, the
families, the community, the awach, the ulama and the administration including the Amir. So in
this section, the role each stack-holder individually or jointly played and the methods each or in
group was applied is discussed. But first the rationale why Hararis learn the Quran is discussed.
The Rationale
Parents sent their child to the Quran Gey for various reasons. Learning and reading the
Quran is a requirement from a Muslim, though one may not be regarded as a non-Muslim if he
could not read the Quran. The prestige one acquires in the Harari community, however, is
dependent on one’s Quran knowledge. Quran is read by afocha members and friends in a
wedding ceremony, moulode, or till a grave is made ready for a burial. Depending on the depth
of knowledge they have, those who read the Quran sit on the gidir nadaba or tit nadaba. The
kabir, for instance, will be seated at gidir nadaba. Those who do not read sit at dachi (floor)
where people step with their shoes. This is the opportunity for individuals to demonstrate
personal success through competence according to social standards, i.e. being knowledgeable in
the Quran.
158
If the dachi is occupied with those who read the Quran those who cannot read the Quran
wait outside the living room arranging pairs of shoes left by the Quran readers. They consider
this as losing honor and respect and start blaming their parents. Their parents as well start
shifting blame by pointing a finger at one another for their boy’s failure.
The community, however, would admonish and blame the parents as early as possible for
not sending their child at proper age to the Quran Ge. The elders would ask, “Why did you not
send the child to the Quran Gey? Would he be going to pour tea at weddings and other
ceremonies to his friends and his younger brothers who sat at the nadaba?” As education in
Harari community is communal, the community uses reward and castigation to see its members
confirm to this.
When the readers completed reading the Quran, referred to as makhtam, they would be
served with tea and sweets by those who are Quran-illiterate, who would drink tea last of all and
eat sweets from those left over. Thus, it is not only for religious reasons that individuals learn
how to read the Quran; knowing how to read the Quran brings privileges. Thus, by applying
carrot and stick the community encourages children to join the Quran Gey that was self-
A child who joined the Quran Gey would be governed by those values operating in the
Quran Gey. When a child was late he would be welcomed by all students who would say:
159
Karsi Dubucho Déjà
This ‘hymn’ implies the student was late while he was filling his belly. Especially, the
last two verses indicate that the late comer’s belly is too big because he eats too much and he is
late while doing so. Thus, they implied that he preferred his belly to the Quran. Next time the
late comer would come on time to avoid such kind of humiliation. Here the students reminded
the late comer the violation of a value of conformity that governs the behavior of students by
expressing their disappointments. Hence, it could be said the late comer has violated the
A student could totally be absent from class for various reasons. The kabir would send
the boy’s ashideys who would find out the reason why the student was absent and report their
findings. If they found out he was ill they would request God to send His mercy to their
Yenataw Afeta
Yitebqaw Ferajata
Roughly it means:
160
The kabir, upon receiving the report, would visit the sick and make duwaa. If, however,
they found out that the absentee was not sick the students immediately would ask him to come
with them voluntarily. If he followed their order, he would be accompanied to the Quran Gey
If, however, he refused to go along with them they would use force to take him to the
Quran Gey. Nobody would come to risk him, including his family. For instance, the mother
would point to his hiding place by conduct or words if he hid knowing they were coming for
him. They might drag him away from his home or carry him by holding his legs and arms
Ya Quran Farwi
Ya Afdija Fajiwi
Rough Meaning:
You who mix sorghum flour with water for his mother
The students were trying to convey at least two messages. One was the fact that the
absentee did not have the courage to face the kabir for he had not studied. Two, the reason why
he had not studied was his being busy in the household hearth traditionally supposed to be done
by mothers. They would continue chanting till they reached the Quran Gey where he would
receive a few lashes from his kabir. If the student is a habitual absentee, however, the kabir
would put cuffs on his two legs and force him to stay behind after school when other students left
for their home. He would stay till the sun set. He would be allowed to leave for his home when
161
his parents came and begged the kabir to release him pledging he would not be absent
henceforth.
Class Management
When a student disturbed his Ashidey (class) behaving badly, an oral warring would be
given to him by the tit kabir. If the student continued with his bad behavior and made it difficult
for others to attend their daily lessons he would be placed in the middle of a circle formed by his
ashidey, who would pinch him and force him to promise not to disturb any more. That was how
students regulated each other’s behavior, by forcing one another to refrain from acts that may
harm others.
If a student repeatedly failed to recite the verses from the Quran he would be humiliated
Dodit Dobengit
Shehatziew Afaqa
Ishawe! Ishawe!
Ignoramus! Ignoramus!
The second and third lines give the message that the student is still a baby and lacks
eligibility to be at the Quran Gey. Thus, this would put pressure on the student to prove his
eligibility. Unlike the pinch, this one appeals to the student’s conscience.
162
In all disciplinary matters the kabir would interfere only when a given student could not
improve by the disciplinary measures administered by his ashidey or tit kabir. For instance, when
a student could not recite the day’s lesson in the presence of the kabir he would be ordered to
study while the kabir was listening to others. If the student could not succeed in two or three
trials, he would not leave for home while the others did. This was called dish. He would be
allowed to go to his home either if he recited correctly or his parents came and promised that
It can be observed that this punishment is tougher compared to the previous two. It may
be said the values the students violated in the latter case are higher than the first two. In other
words, the values that govern the relationship a student has with his kabir is superior
hierarchically to those that govern the relations among students. Hence, the higher the value
In Harari tradition fathers spend most of their day outside their home working on their
farm or in their shop. So mothers might bring their troublemaker child to the kabir to be
disciplined. So unlike what is said by Waldron (1975a) mothers might not wait the coming of the
father if they thought it was urgent to discipline the child. The Kabir was there to do so.
The students were not only regulated by disciplinary measures administered by the
students and kabir. There were also certain privileges which were enjoyed by the students. For
instance, on Friday morning students would present themselves at the Quran Gey and read
together with the kabir Suratul (chapter) Yasin and Tabarak. After going back to their home and
cleaning up they would attend Friday prayer accompanying their Kabir who was to sit among
those who would take the first row during the reading of the Quran and praying of Friday prayer.
163
The students would be just on the next row to their Kabir. This was one occasion where public
recognition and respect was given to the kabir and his students.
On Thursday, after students completed their weekly revisions, the Kabir would take them
to Aw Abadir to read Yasin and Tabarak together with the murid who would welcome and serve
them with sweets and finally bless them. Unlike ordinary visitors to the Shrine who always come
with gifts like incenses, some foods, and chat 93 the Kabir and his students would be provided
with part of the gifts brought by those visitors. Hence, unlike the sanctions applied by students
and the kabir to deter the students from acting badly, those awards by the public, murid, and the
When one Ashidey completed the 15th chapter of the Quran the Luh would be decorated
and some selected verses from the Quran would be written on it. Each student would read the
verse in the presence of the Kabir at the Quran Gey. In old times they would go to the palace and
do the reading in the presence of the Amir. They would repeat the same thing in the presence of
the ulama and at each student’s home. At the palace and each student’s home they would be
given a token of money which they would hand over to their Kabir who would divide it equally
among them. That was an occasion where the society used to teach its children honesty and how
While the ceremony was called kafhaya matabeq the money is called kafhaya mahaleq.
These were how public recognitions would be given to students who attained that level
successfully. The Kabir would also be evaluated by his students’ performance, for if the
students’ performance was not good while reading in the presence of the stack holders a message
would be sent to the Kabir to make improvement. The evaluation was based on the collaboration
164
When a student completed the whole chapters of the Quran, i.e. 30 chapters, a festival
would be prepared by the student’s family and near relatives and people would be invited. After
food and drink was served the student would write verses selected for this purpose from the last
chapter of the Quran on a decorated Luh. While writing he would read each word with their
vowels loudly to the audience to prove his knowledge of the Quran. Then he broke 6-12 qalam
on the Luh as a sign of graduation. Families and relatives taking this opportunity would
contribute money, which the student would use to start business. A similar ceremony, however,
would be held for a girl student on her wedding day (see fig.17 above)
The Kabir would command respect from the community and derive some benefits. In the
ceremonies and occasions such as weddings and burials ceremonies the Kabir would start the
reading. The Kabir would start reading Yasin and Tabarak when he took his students to awach.
Everybody who came across the Kabir in the narrow streets of the walled city would give way to
him.
When a child joined the Quran Gey his family would take chat, incense and one shilling
as a gift to the Kabir. While in the Quran Gey the student would share his snack with the kabir.
The kabir would either give his share to the tit kabir in recognition of the tit kabir’s services or
he might dry it, either to store and consume it in the future or sell it to the Hajji pilgrims.
Aala Gubadan
This was an event that took place in the harvest season. Each student would take five
heads of sorghums, one aqara (bundle) of chat, and incense to the Kabir on Thursday. The Kabir
and his students would take 2/5th of the sorghums heads and 1/3 of the incense to Aw Abadir on
the annual ritual visit required from the students at the Quran Gey (Gibb, 1999). One fifth of the
165
incense would be delivered by the students to Ai Abida where the students were served with
shur, porridge made from wheat flour. After returning from their visit, two heads of sorghums
would be given to each student. Only one fifth would remain with the Kabir.
In this ceremony one observes mutual dependency. The Kabir would use the heads of the
sorghums as seeds for the next year. On the other hand, by giving some portion to the awach he
made sure that the harvest of the current year and the seeds of the next year were blessed by the
spiritual leaders of the community, including the two heads of sorghums which were taken back
The kabir would sow the seeds the next year at his farm if he had one and was able to
plough his land. As he was a full time teacher, however, those farmers who were around his farm
would look after his farm by plowing and harvesting at the proper time. He taught their children,
they took care of his farm. Here the broader relation that encompasses the kabir, students with
their families, awach and the farmers is governed by broadmindedness of all those involved
guided by protection for the welfare of the people and nature (Schwartz, 1994).
Currently children attend both modern schools and the Quran Gey. We may classify the
Quran Gey into three types based on the time and place the Quran is taught. The first one is the
Quran Gey that teaches the Quran before school from 6:00-7:00 a.m. in the morning. The second
Quran Gey teaches after school from 4:30-5:30 p.m. The third one is Aw Mujahidin Mosque,
166
The researcher attended, on October 8, 2013, the first Quran Gey and video recorded
while male students were learning the Quran at Sheikh Ahmed Mosque. The girls’ class is
conducted at Staz (teacher) Mujib Arah-man’s home. Both boys and girls94 conform to the
established norms and values by putting on Islamic dresses when they attend classes. At 7 a.m.
they leave for their home where they take off their dress and put on their school uniform to go to
Like old Quran Gey, students at different levels study under one roof making circles that
designate their class as beginners, intermediates and seniors. While boys who are at the letter
identifying level refer to themselves as ashideys, Isha Smir, who is 11 years old, in grade 5 in
modern schooling, and who can memorize up to chapter 7 of the Quran refers to her group as
jamaa.95
Two Istauzach (teachers), teach seniors. Immediately when the seniors finish their
mahakam, memorizing verses from the Quran, they teach students in the intermediate classes. In
their turn the intermediate ones teach those who are at the letter-identifying level. For instance,
Khadijah Mujib A-Rahman who is 9 years old and in grade 3 in modern schooling stated 96 that
her tutor is Isha Mujib A-Rahman, her elder sister, who has completed reading the Quran and
now is studying to memorize it. Hence, they employ individual coaching and learning circles that
student is absent for certain days he would be advised to bring his parents to explain his absence.
The seniors and intermediate students help, like the old Quran Gey, in keeping class disciplines.
In the two part-time Quran Geyach, where 85% of students are Hararis, the teaching aids are the
94
According to the attendance sheet there are 136 students including girls
95
Interview on 09/27/14 in Harar
96
Interview on 09/27/13 in Harar
167
Quran and a book called Quranul Qaida to teach how to read and pronounce Arabic alphabets
properly. There is no luh that could be used as handwriting exercise book. It is plausible to
assume the students are only taught to read, not to write. Moreover, the involvement of the
community is lesser compared to the old Quran Gey. So is the role of students in the
In Aw Mujahidin Mosque, where the majorities are Gurage, learning was self-paced. As a
student completed one verse or chapter of the Qur’an, the teacher assigns him a new verse. There
are no formal tests, only the demonstration of mastery, which is characterized by correctly
reciting and writing verses from the Qur’an. Talented students memorize the entire Qur’an and
to higher Islamic institutions where they study Fiqh (Islamic Jurisprudence), and Tawhid
(Islamic Theology), that is taught as additional courses. No fee is paid by students. The teachers
A competition on how to correctly read the Quran is held every year among different
Quran Gey students at aada gar (Harari Cultural Centre) and the winners are rewarded in the
presence of elders and ulama, such as Sheikh Ahmed who lectures every day after Mekhrib Salat
at the grand Mosque. Earlier Quran Gey students, before graduation, used to visit and read the
Quran at awach. These days, the students do not visit awach except the Salihin KG students97
who the researcher has accompanied while they have visited and received duwaa from the murid
of Aw Abadir. Thus, the practice has continued by KG students who are not, however, required
to read the Quran. Hence, the involvement of the community in evaluating the kabir is lesser
when compared with the old Quran Gey. So is the feedback from the community to the kabir.
97
Video recorded on 20/10/2013
168
From what has been said the following could be concluded. As it has been seen, though
the Quran Gey is the place where the Quran is taught, it is governed by the indigenous values of
the Hararis. It is autonomous. And the main actors are the students, the tit kabir and the Kabir
not the state institutions. Thus, the state plays fewer roles in the observation of those values. The
values were observed by students not only to avoid embarrassment and humiliation but also for
Moreover, the relation among ashidey is not only that of a coercive nature. It is friendly
as well. It is established on the give and take principle. They call each other to collect teaching
aids and they divide it equally among themselves. A student may not take part in the sharing if
she or he has not taken part in the collection. Every one contributes snack and cannot share if one
has not done so. On the other hand, he cannot refuse to join her/his classmates for the snack for if
The students derive benefits from the relations they have with their Kabir. Both the kabir
and the students were greatly respected by the community. That was expressed on Friday prayers
and awach visitation. The students, their families and the kabir derive benefits from the relation
From that relation it can be observed that, without applying state law, an institution
whose main objective is to teach the Quran manages itself by involving the students, the
families, the Kabir and Tit Kabir. Hence, social relations are not regulated by state law alone.
They are regulated by the indigenous values and institutions as well. To that end the involvement
of the community ranges from putting pressure on the family to send its child to the Quran Gey,
supplying teaching aids, to assessing and evaluating both the students and the Kabir. On the
169
other hand, what it is observed is, the higher the level the student is in the Quran Gey the lesser
Kabir Gar
Men and women who graduated from the Quran Gey attend a lecture offered by Sheikh
Ahmed Abdullahi every evening at the grand Mosque in Harar. A similar lecture is offered by
Aw Abdi Sharif at Jabarti Ismail Mosque after Mekhrib Salat. This practice is similar to the ashir
gar, “higher religious education taken in the evening either at the house of the teacher or in the
Classes are conducted in Arabic and Harari. Individuals who could read Arabic read daily
lessons in Arabic and Sheikh Ahmed expounds that to the audience in Harari. The subjects
include Feqhi, Tawhid, Tesfir (exigency) of Quran and Hadis (Life History of Prophet
170
Gey Medresa
When modern education started at Gey Madrasa (see figure 18) students joined that
institution either directly or after completing Quran Gey. It is worthwhile, therefore, to discuss
briefly who initiated the idea of starting Gey Madrasa, what the economic and social
backgrounds were behind the idea and how it was run. What were the values promoted and
The following part is based on separate conversations98 with: Ezair Abdullahi Hassan
Sheriff, one of the first students in Gey Madrasa, and who witnessed the construction of that
98
Interview on 12/12/2011in Addis Ababa
171
school; Sheikh Ahmad Kebu,99 once student, and vice and head teacher of Gey Madrasa, Ezair
Yusuf Muhammad Idris,100 who took part in the construction of Gey Madrasa and was among
the first students; Kabir Abdulmuheiman Abdulnassir 101 once a teacher in the Amashna
(evening) program; and Abbay Remla Haji Yonis, 102 who was one of the first female students in
the Amashna program. To make things simple Kebu’s narration was basically used.
Sheikh Ahmad Kebu gave detailed information on Gey Madrasah as he was student, a
teacher and principal. According to Sheikh Kebu, following the defeat by Menelik, Harari elites
worried about losing Harari identity due to the imposition of an alien culture. Their worry was
not unfounded, as Ullendore (1960) wrote the fell of Harar to the Ethiopian authority brought the
influence of Amharic to the extent it would displace Harari altogether. Nevertheless, the same
author has cognition that the Hararis had retained their special character and had proven
amazingly resilience in the face of both its massive Cushitic surroundings and the strong impact
of the Arab (Ullendore, 1960). Thus, the Harari elite formed a civic organization to introduce
modern education and protect Harari culture from being spoiled and finally wiped out from the
earth by the alien one. For that purpose they leased a two storey house and enrolled students who
According to Ezair Abdullahi, Hararis engagement in modern business was the reason for the
introduction of modern education. Modern foreign businessmen came to Harar following the
Egyptian occupation and engaged in the import and export business. They employed Hararis and
99
Interview on 12/30/2011in Addis Ababa
100
Interview on 1/5/2012 in Harar
101
Interview on 12/1/2011 in Harar
102
Interview on 12/5/2011 in Harar
172
applied modern accounting systems to run their businesses. Hararis who learned how to do
businesses started making ready-to-wear garments from the raw clothes they purchased from
their former employers, employing the sewing machine they imported with their savings. They
Realizing that learning computation was relevant to run modern business, the Hararis
started attending evening mathematics classes at Sheikh Kamil’s house, an Arab who came from
Egypt. Another teacher was Aw Matiba who was a Turk man. Kabir Muhammad Abdal-Wahhab
also taught them modern mathematics. After mastering computation they created an organization
called fir-match or signatories as they signed an agreement to introduce modern education and
fight against what they called harmful practices such as FGM. They leased a two storey house
from Aw Ahmad Abogn. They had had two teachers who came from Al-Azhar University, Cairo
from Arab communities living in Harar. Those teachers, who brought teaching materials too,
According to Sheik Kebu, the values which were intended to promote in establishing Gey
Madrasa were fostering a sense of nationhood and promoting national unity, while according to
Ezair Abdullahi, the rationales were meeting the economic and social needs of national
development, equipping the youth to play a productive role in the life of the Hararis, prepare
children for those changes in attitude and relationships that were necessary for the smooth
process of a rapidly developing modern economy. Both approaches have two values in common,
i.e. success and capability (Schwartz, 1994). Nevertheless, while in the first case Harari elite
were guided by the value of devoutness based on commitment and acceptance of custom, in the
second case they were led by the value of creativity based on independent thought and action
(Schwartz, 1994).
173
According to Kabir Abdulmuheiman, there were individuals who were not happy with
the idea. Hence, the Quran Gey Kabirach referred to Gey Madrasa as manjasa (taint) as their
students left them in great numbers and joined Gey Madrasa. Thus, unlike sheikh Kebu’s
assertion of national unity, Gey Madrasa seemed to divide Hararis. On the other hand, that urged
the fir-mach to build a school with a larger compound. They resolved to build it with the help of
Hararis. Hence, Haji Ibrahim Abdi, the chairperson of the fir-match and pioneer of Gey
Madrasa, took the matter up with the people who came to mosque to pray Juma Salat (Friday
prayer).
The ideas were favorably received and the people volunteered with enthusiasm to make
contributions in cash, kind, labour and ideas or knowledge. They started demolishing the houses
situated at the vicinity where the school was built, separating the stones from the mud. Aw Faqi
Mama, the owner of the house, received some cash as compensation, as pointed out by Ezair
Abdullahi. Respecting the right to private property by paying compensation wherever private
property is utilized for public purpose was another value carefully adhered to by the Hararis.
Hence, Hararis are always guarded against using private property for public purposes,
either without paying compensation to the owner or without having the owner’s consent. For
instance, stones used to build mosques were washed in a river to keep them pure. Harari farmers
always cleared their feet (arches) or pair of shoes when they crossed their neighbor’s farm land
to theirs to make sure no single piece of soil is passed from the neighbor’s farm to theirs. Hence,
Hararis’ beliefs were guided by a universal and basic value: “justice is the constant will of giving
174
As the stones collected from the demolished house were not sufficient, additional stones
were collected and brought from far places by volunteers who lined up and transported the stones
in relays. In doing so, people were promoting the value of cooperation, thrift, and effective use of
resources under the leadership of an Engineer Ahmad Selah, a Yemeni who was paid 2,000
Maria Teresa for his service. He also built the duke house for the Harar duke simultaneously.
According to Ezair Abdullahi, Haile Sellassie inaugurated both Gey Madrasa and the duke house
For the inauguration day all who participated in realizing the school and people who
resided in the surrounding countryside were invited. On that occasion, those students who had
studied for the last five years in the leased building and demonstrated extraordinary performance
and talent were recruited and blessed by the public to teach in the new school. Hence, what is
experienced here are values of self-help and reliance as well as self-sufficiency and public
Italians entered Harar and took over the administration of Gey Madrasa in 1936. Then
they recruited and taught those whom they thought would promote the fascist cause. They,
however, did not prevent the teaching of Arabic and the Quran. They introduced Italian language
in the curriculum. They also injected new ideas in the administration of the school.
Hence, appointing an expatriate Sheik Ali Muanna as a manager, they introduced hiring
teachers for salary. Students were also obliged to wear school uniforms and sang in group
anthems in the Italian language while they went to and came back from school. Students joined
103
Muhammad Ibrahim (2005) indicated 1930 for the completion of Gey Madrasa
175
Gey Madrasa in mass and consequently some Quran Geys were closed. For instance, Kabir Ali
Bedri Quran Gey was completely closed as everyone in that Quran Gey joined Gey Madrasa.
Kabir Ali Bedri was not precluded, however. Rather, he was taken in as an elementary teacher.
Sheikh Ahmad Kebu and his younger brother Hamza Kebu also left that Quran Gey to join Gey
Madrasa.
Another incident worth mentioning is the full scholarship granted by the Italians to the
children of the Oromo Balabat Lijouch (Children of Oromo Land Lords) from Arsi, Bale, etc.,
according to Ezair Yusuf. Various religious courses and the Arabic language were taught by the
most popular teachers-Sheikh Ali, Ibrahim Abdi, Ali Hassan, and Muhammad Ali-during the
Italian occupation. Thus, Hararis promoted values of flexibility and adaptation to new situations
As Italians left Harar, Hararis reorganized Gey Madrasa. A Board consisting of Hararis
and individual advisers from the surrounding communities was established by the initiative of
two individuals, Sheikh Haji Yusuf alias Basha Birign and Sheikh Haji Umar Adus. According
to a note prepared by Basha Birign, which is currently in the possession of Sheik Kebu, the
176
7. Haji Ali Zikaih (Izadin Ali, the late Ethiopian Mining and Energy Minister’s father),
Member;
8. Haji Umar Khalaf (the late Ethiopian Army General Abdullah’s father), Member;
According to Kabir Abdulmuheiman the majority of board members were educated either
2. Haji Hussein Umar Bare, from Somali Ishaq tribe (Father of the late Dr. Abdul Majid who
was Ethiopian Ambassador to the UN);
Thus, that school was probably the first school in Ethiopia to be administered by a Board
collective leadership were values promoted at that time. The following courses were offered.
2. Arabic Language, which included, but was not limited to, poems, composition, dictation, and
Handwriting.
Every Monday morning teachers would inspect students for cleanliness. According to
Abbay Remla, each student was obliged to have four handkerchiefs to clean different parts of his
177
body and seating chair. These activities were to teach students the value of cleanliness, good
Haile Sellassie, regarding the Board as an alliance between Hararis and the Somalis,
accused it of having a link with a movement known as Hanulato (a sort of political alliance
between Hararis and the Somali). That movement was initiated by Hararis to seek freedom from
Ethiopia concurrently with the Somalis’ seeking freedom from the British colony through
referendum. Those who believed Hanulato was far extreme, however, organized a moderate one
preferred the former to the latter. According to Sheikh Kebu and Ezair Yusuf, to stop the
movement before it went out of control the Hail Sellassie administration arrested Hanulato
members including some of the Board members and closed Gey Madrasa.
That did not, however, last long. Veteran teachers, together with those who were released
from prison, started the school. Haile Sellassie, however, alleging they would spoil students with
politics, expelled those who joined teaching after being released. In lieu of those teachers Sheikh
Muhammad Dewale, Sheikh Ismail Umar, Sheikh Zekaria Abdullahi, Sheikh Ahmad Yusuf,
Kabir Ahmad Yonis (he served as teacher during Italian occupation) were employed. Though the
administration was put under the Ministry of Education and the curriculum was adjusted to fit
the new arrangement, Gey Madrasa was led up to 1984 by the Hararis (Muhammad Ibrahim
2005).
Once upon a time there was a Yemeni religious scholar who came for Dawa, religious
teaching, to the rural areas of Ethiopia. He reached the outer rim of Harar at dusk and
decided to rest for the night before entering the town the next morning. Suddenly a
woman approached him from Harar, bringing him some food and blankets for the night.
Concerning the cooked meal, she said to him, ‘eat the allowed and leave the prohibited’,
then left him and went back home. The Yemeni sheikh was surprised and took a look at
178
the dishes she had brought, but he couldn’t work out what this strange woman was
indicating. Finally, the Yemeni left the food, remained hungry and waited until the next
morning. The woman from Harar approached him again and asked if he had enjoyed the
meal. But the scholar answered that he hadn’t touched it, since he did not know which of
the food was prohibited and which was allowed. Then the woman answered that this
couldn’t be an obstacle, since he should have eaten the food but spat out the pieces that
stuck in his teeth. Thereupon the Yemeni left the place, remarking that he was not
capable of teaching religion in a community in which even the women had such a great
knowledge of Islam (Desplat, 2005, p. 490).
The knowledgeable woman who hosted the scholar was “Ai Abida, the most popular
female saint of Harar” (Desplat, 2005, p. 490). This legend about the scholar and Ai Abida is the
expression of the zenith the Harari induchach attended in knowledge. When it comes to modern
education, however, things were not as easy as spitting out the pieces that stuck in ones teeth.
The majority of Hararis, in early days, did not support women to join Gey Madrasa, though they
allowed women to learn Quran in Quran Gey or rarely attend Ashir Gar.
This resistance, however, did not last long as elders and youths campaigned and
convinced at least some parents to send their daughters to Gey Madrasa. Moreover, women who
joined Gey Madrasa proved learning modern education did not expose them to indecency.
Rather, according to Sheik Kebu, girls in Gey Madrasa attracted scholars who looked for future
wives. For instance, Professor Jamal Abdulqadir, who was among the first graduates of Haile
Sellassie I University and currently a professor at Betel Private Medical School came and
Similarly, after the integration, men from Eritrea came to Harar and concluded contracts
of marriage with Gey Madrasa female students. That had encouraged families to send their
daughters to Gey Madrasa and called for a makeup class for the late comers. For that purpose,
students who completed at least eighth grade and university students who were on vacation
179
arranged a special program referred to as Amashna and enrolled the late comers. Here one can
see the commitment of young Hararis to eradicate illiteracy, a very important value.
According to Kabir Abdulmuheiman, who was eighth grade student and taught in that
program, those classes were mainly arranged for those women who could not, for this or that
reason, attend regular classes. His information goes along with what is written in the book የሀረሪ
አመፅ (Harari rebellion). Some of those students were successful in joining Higher Education and
attained a high career ladder. Bringing the women to the program, however, was not easy.
Hence, various mechanisms were used to convince parents to let their daughters join the
180
Encouraged by such kind of agitation families started to send their girls to Amashna.
According to Abbay Remla, informed teachers also went from door to door where girls were
learning embroidery and convinced them to join Amashna. Though some girls and women joined
the program still the families were highly suspicious of what was going on in Amashna. To win
their trust a get-together of families, elders and students was arranged where the students
demonstrated that what they learned was within the boundaries of Islam. Parents were delighted,
especially when the students expounded the five pillars of Islam in Harari. Those who ranked
from first to third were awarded by Ai Mumina Sitti, an elderly woman. Consequently, the
tension was eased and more families let their daughters join Amashna. The tone, as well,
Amashnama dejna
Eqotle tebana
Alale gelataw megel negabana
Yemaj nigizmana
Yemaj sitena
Sitaa bejihintakh gizman milelana
Awacha ayachleem sityu niemetkhaw
Shelmeyu shemqeyu atlaybyu dedkhaw
My translation:
One observes the transition from blaming to blessing parents. Women were also involved
as teachers, as three women were among those who started and taught in Amashna. After
attending two years in Amashna the girls could enroll as third graders either in Gey Madrasa,
181
Swedish Elementary School or some other schools in Harar. Thus, that background work at
Amashna is a value promoted with the intention of preparing learners as members of the society.
Thus, Hararis were probably among those leading communities in Ethiopia to allow
women to learn and teach traditional as well as modern education. Those who studied in
traditional Islamic schools had served as judges after completing higher learning, according to
the history of Amatullah Abd al-Rahman (1851-1893) who served as Qadi and kabir. Probably it
was at that similar time (1870) that Esther Morris was appointed as the first woman judge in
USA. In this respect Hararis were way ahead of other countries. Harari values of education were,
therefore, promoting gender equality by favoring women and rendering them all the necessary
Students, on their part, were quick to respond to the urgent need of their school and
community when those who were trained in embroidery and food preparation prepared an
exhibition to sell their products in their various clubs. From the proceeds they bought a
microphone for the school. Thus, students develop values which foster a sense of social
182
CHAPTER SIX: THE RELEVANCY OF VALUES IN REGULATING HARARI TRADE
AND BUSINESS
Introduction
Harar and Hararis history is much related with trade. But little is said about the fact that
they have been using trade as a means of securing and maintaining peace. To preserve Harar and
extend trade beyond it, they made trade concessions to the Oromos and allowed the Somalis to
derive income by protecting caravans that went out from and came into Harar. They allowed
their currencies to circulate beyond the city-state while at the same time permitting foreign
currencies to be used in the city state. Thus, trade for Hararis was not a source of conflict; rather,
it was a means of achieving and maintaining peace. This chapter suggests that underlying the
idea of peaceful trade were values such as righteousness, honesty, sincerity, diligence, trust, non-
discrimination and fairness in the relations among traders. Legal rules, among which the sanctity
of property rights and of contract were paramount, functioned to protect these values.
Many scholars and travelers (Abbas Ahmed, 1992; Ahmed Zekaria, 1997; Burton, 1894;
Caulk, 1977; Muhammad Hassen, 1973; R. Pankhurst, 1968; Stitz, 1976; Waldron, 1984, etc.)
wrote about Harar trade history. While some wrote about the coins of Harar others wrote about
how the Hararis preserved Harar as a marketplace and secured the trade route by applying
various methods to regulate the relations they had with the surrounding people. Nevertheless,
they have not said much about how Hararis used trade as a means of avoiding conflict and
maintaining peace. In this chapter some of those methods are identified and discussed, relying on
183
the literature and reports produced by scholars and travelers in order to examine their relevance
to contemporary Ethiopian society. It is worthy, however, first to briefly discuss how Harar
moved from being the capital city of the militant kingdom of Adal into a mercantile city-state.
Burton (1894) visited the Islamic city of Harar in 1885 staying ten days disguised as
Sheikh Abdullahi from Yemen (Yusuf Ahmed, 1961). Quoting Makrizi Burton (1894) described
Harar as a capital of Hadiya, whereas for others (Hussein Ahmed, 2010; Maftuh Zekaria, 2000;
and Waldron, 1984) Harar was the capital city of Adal. Before Harar became the capital city,
Dakar was the capital city of Adal. In 1470 Harar replaced Dakar that started to decline.
As early as the 14th century, some members of the ruling family of the Walasma dynasty
of Ifat shifted their political centre from the eastern Shewa region to the highlands of Harar.
Under the control of the rulers from Ifat, the town of Harar and its environs thus became the
nucleus of the sultanate of Adal, which gradually extended its hegemony into large parts of the
hinterland of Zeila, and challenged the Christian kingdom in the north (Hussein Ahmed, 2010;
Nicholl, 1997) to broaden the rule of Harar to include a large and fertile province, Hararghe, and
As it has been noted earlier, the Amirs who ruled Harar were 72 in number according to
Wagner (1974) or 76 as mentioned by Abdu-Khalil (2007). Among those Amirs, Amir Mahfouz
was a religious-military leader who fought the Abyssinians for almost 30 years taking advantage
of the 40 days of rigorous fasting days when the Abyssinians were less capable of carrying arms
(Harris, 1844; Burton,1894; Haggai, 1994). After his defeat and death he was succeeded by his
son in law Imam Ahmed Ibn Ibrahim, known as Gragn by the Abyssinians, who conquered and
ruled Ethiopia for 15 years till he was defeated by the Portuguese army (Burton, 1894).
184
Imam Ahmed was succeeded by his nephew, Amir Nur, who after defeating and
beheading Galaudius, returned to Harar. As a consequence, both Abyssinians and Harar were
weakened. “Taking the advantage of the exhaustion of the two states, the migrating Oromos
overran both damaging them irreparably for long time” (Muhammad Hassen, 1980, p. 228). As a
consequence, the Adal kingdom shifted its capital to Awsa leaving Harar to its own fate. While
The effects of the occupation of those territories by the Oromo people were multi-
dimensional. The Oromos over-ran many cities such as Sem, Shoa, Negeb, Dekker, and
Haragaya (Ahmed Zekaria, 1997) which were probably satellites of Harar either eliminating the
people or adopting them. The internal revolt was also another factor to weaken Harar (Caulk,
1977). Harar then was isolated from its vassals and continued to be "the seat for an Amirate
which, although small in size, was noted as a center of trade and Islamic learning in the horn of
Before proceeding it is worthy to throw light on the socio-political system of the Oromos
that enabled them to defeat and invade villages and hold a grip from time to time on Harar. The
Alla, Jarso, Nole, Obora, Anniya and Ittu are the main Oromo clans living around Harar and
Harar province (Muhammad Hassen, 1973). Each Gosa or clan, consisting the confederation, had
its own government headed by a Bokko (Muhammad Hassen, 1973). They also had a common
political institution called the Raba-Dori situated at Gara Mullata, “about three days to the
They were organized in“ a system of classes (luba) that succeed each other every eight
years in assuming military, economic, political and ritual responsibilities” (Waldron, 1984, p. 1)
where there was a especial age group assigned to defend and wage war against enemies and
185
sometimes one clan against another (Caulk, 1977). That made it hard to defeat the Oromos.
Describing their skill in warfare Burton (1894) has the following to say: “These Oromos are
tolerably brave; avoid matchlock balls by throwing themselves upon the ground when they see
the flash, ride well, use the spear skillfully” (pp. 189-190).
Mukhtar, who mustered thousands of armed and mounted men (Caulk, 1977; Muhammad
The Oromos might well have been equal or superior of the Egyptians. In numbers they
were overwhelmingly superior; in knowledge and skillful use of terrain, they certainly
surpassed the Egyptians. But the possession of firearms and artillery gave the Egyptians a
decisive victory wherever and whenever they fought with the Oromos (Muhammad
Hassen, 1980, p. 232).
Using that skill and courage they defeated a British agent, Piten, who had ridden with his
500 militiamen trained by British officers to restore order (E. S. Pankhurst, 1958, p. 57).
Hararis, however, resorted to various mechanisms to have peace with the Oromos.
Caulk (1977) stated that Amirs used various mechanisms to smooth their relations with
the neighboring Oromos. They offered clothes either made in Harar by Hararis or imported.
Amir Abd al-Shakur ibn Yusuf (1783-1794), went with a friend to the Jarso and other Nole
clans, taking bales of sheeting for the first time to these Oromos in order to deal in peace with
them. Caulk (1977) further noted that these gifts may have been a subsidy to free the way for salt
and other caravans which must have arrived through the Nole country. Cloth, imported by the
Hararis initially as luxury, turned into a necessity for the Oromos who replaced leather wrap with
it.
As it can be seen when price setting is discussed, Hararis applied preferential treatment
by allowing the Oromos to buy goods in Harar for fixed prices while the Oromos normally sold
their products at market price. Hararis taught advanced methods of farming to those who were
186
settled and allowed them to sell their products to the town people. Moreover, they taught them
To win the Oromos’ friendship the Amirs encouraged intermarriage and inter-adoption.
Oromo chiefs and their lineages and commoners involved in such marriages and adoptions
received special treatment and services when they came to Harar (Abbas Ahmed, 1992). The
intermarriage went both ways, as Klemm (2002) mentioned “in the last hundred and fifty years,
many Oromos have moved to the city, intermarried, and produced children who are recognized
as urban Ge usu” (p. 68). It is plausible, therefore, to believe that with intermarriage that
involved both sides, values were exchanged, blended and new ones were created.
By doing so the Hararis created a rift between the Oromos who turned into settled
farmers and those who were semi nomadic pastoralists. Caulk (1977) maintains that the alliance
between the Amirs and the Oromos who settled and turned into farmers with some dozens of
matchlock men protected Harar from being invaded by semi nomadic pastoralists. “Yet the
townsmen must have benefited as much from cooperation between farmers, traders and cattle
breeders as from war. Otherwise, like the Adal Emirate at Awsa, Harar would have been
different titles. The titles were Malaq, garad, and damin. The Malaq was a chief of the smallest
unit in administration. The damin was chief of a village and the Malaq was chief of a ‘clan’ with
Historically the Somalis were in alliance with Hararis till they were isolated by the
expansion of the Oromos (Muhammad Hassen, 1980). Thus, the rapprochement with the Oromos
allowed Hararis to renew their relationship. The two ports, Zeila 180 miles and Berberah 220
187
miles away from Harar, were in full control of the Somalis. The Somalis provided passages and
supplied camels to transport import and export goods (Blundell, 1900; Caulk, 1977). They also
served as abban for they were not having much trouble when passing those territories held by the
Oromos with whom they intermingled (Caulk, 1977). Hence, the overall relations between
Hararis and the Oromos and the Somalis were based on helping each other, guided by values of
benevolence expressed in preserving and enhancement of the welfare of people with whom one
To continue as a prosperous trade center, Hararis had to secure their city and the trade
routes to and from the coast through various mechanisms including trade concessions. Scholars
attribute additional factors, such as geographical location, climate and weather, etc. Of equal or
greater significance were the legal structures of property rights and business as well as ethical
This chapter will identify those values and discuss how they regulated relations among
the traders on the one hand and those between traders and the public and the government on the
other hand. It will also consider the differently organized relations between the government and
the people in the surrounding areas who derived benefits by securing the trade routes and
supplying Harar with products that were either consumed locally or exported.
Key players in the Harar trade, therefore, were local and foreign merchants and their
agents, ordinary citizens, people in surrounding areas, and government officials and institutions.
The multi-faceted relationships were regulated through property rights, price settings, taxes,
agency, etc. Apart from discussing these the chapter also discusses the mechanisms the Hararis
applied to defuse tension with their neighbors, especially with the Oromo people.
188
Values constitute an underlying issue in Harari governance and trade relationship. Thus,
according to Božović (2007), the most important personal values are “righteousness, courage,
honesty, tolerance, goodness, sincerity, and fairness” (p. 173). These are supplemented by
mutual trust, mutual benefit and interest, good intention, compromise and tolerance. These
values assist any one to decide what is good and what is not, i.e., to differentiate between good
actions and bad actions and regulate his or her behavior accordingly. When these values are
individuals adhere to during all forms of business activities” (Božović, 2007, p. 175). Their
obligations may erode the confidence and trust one could have in a merchant or business partner.
Moreover, the effect may not be limited to an individual merchant who disrespects his obligation
but extended to the whole group. For instance, if a merchant from Shawa repeatedly disrespects
his promise the victim of the non-performance would attribute the quality of promise breaker not
only to the individual merchant but to the Shawa merchants as a group. So, to avoid this, the
Shawa merchants would apply sanctions such as reprimand, isolation or restriction, even
respecting various business values by all parties involved in trade was essential for the smooth
functioning of trade.
189
Harar City And Rural Addis Ababa
Fitawrari Tackle Hawariyat was a nine year old when he entered Harar with Menelik’s
army that defeated Amir Abdullah’s small army at the battle of Chelenque. He had been living at
Addis Ababa just before he left and came to Harar, which he described as follows:
የግንብ ከተማ በቤት ላይ ቤት የተሠራበት አይቼ አላውቅም፡፡ ሱቆች እና መደብሮች በውሰጣቸው ሰንትና ሰንት
ዐይነት የባሕር ዕቃዎች የተደረደሩባቸው እና የተሞሉባቸው ናቸው፡፡ ይህን ሁሉ ባንድ ጊዜ ማየት በባለገር
Yagenb ketma bebet lay bêt yetsrabet ayeche alawqem. Suqoch enna medaberuch
yetemolubachew nachew. Yehen hulu band gize mayet bebalger wust ladege leje
I have never seen earlier a town built with large stones blocks and houses with stories.
The shops and stores are stuffed with various types of goods imported from abroad. A boy who
has grown in the country side cannot help but stand in awe of observing all these events at a
time. He suddenly feels very excited and happy (Fitawrari Tackle Hawariyat, Autobiography in
Amharic, 2008-2009).
አዲሰ አበባ የከተማነት መልክ ገና አላወጣም ነበር፡፡ ትልቅ ሰፈር መሰሎ ይታያል፣ ድንኳኖች በጎጆ ቤቶች ጣልቃ
190
In English script it reads as follows.
Addis Ababa yekatamanet melk gena alawatam neber. Teleq sefer meslo yetayal.
Denkwanoch begojo betuch talaq geba ezihenna eziya tebetatnwebetal. Gebaya, medeber
This may be translated as: Addis Ababa has not yet taken the shape of a town. It looks like a
garrison. Soldiers’ bivouac tents are scattered here and there among cottages. There are neither
This fact was confirmed by Blundell (1900) who, after enumerating Debra Brehan, Liche,
and Antotto as selected capitals, described each of these places as permanent camps rather than a
city, a movable seat of government and headquarters of the army selected according to
It is not surprising that the heart of a boy who came from the countryside, i.e. Addis
Ababa, leapt when he saw the event in Harar, i.e. a town built with stone engaged in
export/import trade. The impression Harar created on that boy was confirmed by Burton (1894),
and R. Pankhurst, (1968), who described Harar as essentially a commercial town or prosperous
trade center at the time the Hararis were defeated and their city-state had fallen into the hands of
Menelik II. The defeat of Harar, however, was not absolute as Dr. Teshale Tibebe (1995)
beautifully stated:
When Menelik II entered the city-state in 1887 it was in his capacity as the highest
representative of the ‘idiocy of rural life’ of agrarian Shewa. The army of the city-state
was no match for Menelik II’s. Menelik’s superiority was, however, a superiority of arms
not of civilization. Harar was the only place, other than Jimma, that Menelik II occupied
that was by any standards more advanced than the social relations that were represented
by Menelik II. …The Gabbi Lebash Showans had to learn the rather sophisticated urban
splendor of Harari civilization. It was a contest between agrarian-orthodox-Christian-
parochialism against urban-Muslim-cosmopolitanism. The Showans won militarily, but
not civilizationally; the Hararis lost militarily, but won civilizationally. Twentieth century
Ethiopia followed the urban-civilizational path of the nineteenth-century Harar. To this
191
day, Harar implies urban, civilized culture. Compare Harar with say, Debre Markos (p.
43).
In ordinary language, when Harar was a walled city-state our contemporary capital city
Addis Ababa was a collection of soldiers’ bivouac tents and cottages. While Harar was using
coins in the 19th century for transactions there were no permanent markets and shops in Addis
Ababa. While Harar engaged in import/export business Addis Ababa and its environs were
supplying items which Harar exported in order to import items, for instance a type of cloth
referred to as Abujadid loaded with 300 horses, mules and donkeys (R. Pankhurst, 1968) to be
sold to Addis Ababa. Harar was, therefore, a trade center linking Addis Ababa with the external
world.
As the boy stated, the shops and stores were stuffed with goods and merchandise
imported from abroad, i.e. Yemen, Arabia, India, China, etc. using two trade routes from Zayla
or Barbara. Whereas the first route was the one which cuts through the Somali Eesa territory, the
second one was through the mountains of the Nole tribe that belongs to the Oromo People
(Burton, 1894). The imported goods and merchandise were not only used for local consumption
in Harar. Some were taken either by Hararis or merchants from the highland to the interior part
of Ethiopia, especially to the provinces of Shawa and Arsi, (Hetch, 1992 and R. Pankhurst, 1968)
using the trade routes that converged at Aleyu Amba and finally connecting Shawa with Harar
(Ahmed, Hassan, 2001). Thus, “Harar was essentially a commercial town and a point of contact
between the rich interior Ethiopia and the countries of the Gulf of Aden and beyond” (Abbas
192
Traders
Hararis were farmers before abandoning their land and turning principally into traders.
Among the reasons for such a move was the loss of land to the Oromos in the 16th century or
attraction by the lucrative trade (Abbas Ahmed, 1992). Then after, as Paulitschke notes (Yusuf
Ahmed, 1961, p. 394) trade became the occupation of Hararis and consequently that made
Other people, including Alla clans of the Oromo in the west and south, the Babile to the
east, the Nole in the north, the Issa in the lowlands northwards to the sea, the Gari and Bartari
(who thrust the Oromo back from the Jigjiga plain and mingled with them), the Ogaden Somali
(who with another branch of the Oromo, the Anniya, occupied the headwaters of the Wabi
Shebelle to the south of the Alla), shared an interest in long-distance trade and were fellow
Harar, however, brought together not only fellow Muslims from the east and south of
Ethiopia. It also served as a gathering ground for both Christians and Muslims from the Christian
highland and other parts of Ethiopia. Merchants from Shawa used to come to Harar and do
business with their Harari partners. Forefathers of Jalalle, Sheikh Muhammad Saleh, and Asma
Georges, commonly known as Alaqa Atsme, were some of the merchants who participated for a
The ferengis (foreigners) who were residing either in Harar or Eden were also engaged in
the import and export business. These included: Alfred Bardey, a French merchant; Arthur
Rimbaud, the former French poet became Alfred’s agent in Harar; Mr. Piten a British agent;
Gaetano Sacconi, an Italian who engaged in whole sale trade, etc. (R. Pankhurst, 1968). There
were also Indians and Pakistanis like Muhammad Ali who was “doing a thriving business in
193
Japanese fabrics in which nearly all Harari women were dressed” (Geoffrey, 1935, p. 179) and
“whose house is still admired and then caused the Harari women to develop a certain basketry
Foreign merchants were also running local business. Armenian and Greek communities
were involved in the trade of modern medicine commonly known as Harar (Ahmed Hassen,
2001). “Indians, Syrians, Greek and Italians and several Egyptians who engaged in selling cotton
cloth, clothing, glassware, brass and copper, drinks and preserves” (R. Pankhurst, 1968, p. 410).
Therefore, “Harar served as one of the main links between the Red Sea/Indian Ocean coast and
Earlier when Harar was occupied by the Egyptians (1875-1885) there were “3,000
Amhara Christians, 5,000 Somali Muslims, a handful of Arab, Turkish, Greek, Indian, Syrian,
Italian and Armenian traders, and French missionaries all living among 25,000 Harari Muslims”
(Bender and Dawit, 2010, p. 4). This representation continued even during the reign of Haile
Sellassie, for “every race and creed seemed to be represented here-Somalis, Oromos, Arabs,
Egyptians, Danakil, Indians, Greeks and Armenians” as narrated by Harmsworth (1935, p. 178)
who visited Harar in the early 19th century. Then the Harar market served as a point of cultural
Harar had, therefore, most probably developed a mechanism to overcome the differences
in cultural, language and legal systems to enable the merchants to communicate and do business.
Harar and Hararis, therefore, have a reputation to bring together, through trade and business
people with different backgrounds and beliefs to prosper together, as their prosperity depended
194
Trade Environment
Harar was described by Blundell (1900) and Harris (1844) as a place of prosperity and
It would be hard to imagine a more beautiful situation for a great city than that of Harar.
It stands 5400 feet above the sea, with every condition that makes for wealth and
prosperity-fertility of soil, industrious agricultural population, and central position, and
what is so rare in the catalogue of advantages of an African town -with an extraordinarily
healthy and invigorating climate. (p.221)
Abbas Ahmed (1992) added the prevailing security, the existence of investment opportunity, and
the availability of local agents ready to work with foreign merchants as factors which attracted
were additional factors that attracted trade and contribute to Harar’s wealth and prosperity. Its
special geographical location and political importance were mentioned as additional factors by
Yusuf Ahmed (1960). The legal framework, which included the right to private property
described as a cornerstone of liberty by Sandefur, (2006) was also a key element in Harar’s
prosperity. In recognition of private ownership of land and house, the Amir, through a Qadi,
would issue a title deed to the owners. (Yusuf Ahmed, 1960) The main elements included in the
1. The name of the owner of the property, and how it came to him or her;
2. The nature of the property, whether house or land, with specifications of the type of
house or land;
4. The size of the property in garib (equivalent to 1296 sq. meters), or fraction such as
nus, rub, habbah and danik;
5. The limits of the property on all sides, with reference to neighboring farms or houses,
or rivers, or public streets;
195
6. If purchase or sale were involved, the question of whether the contract was formally
and materially examined;
7. The witnesses to the contract are always mentioned at the end of the document;
Once ownership right was granted nothing would stop the Hararis, who were not
dependent exclusively on rain water to cultivate their farm from being industrious. “They were
skilled also in irrigating their land using water that was collected from streams and springs into
the reservoir called “kuri” which is a wide and shallow basin enclosed with easily available
materials like mud, piece of wood and herbs to hold water from the stream” (Yusuf, 1960,
p. 384).
Using springs or streams or rain water they cultivated fruit trees, coffee, chat and some
plants producing condiments and certain commercial crops like wersi (safflower). Major
Muhammad Mukhtar (Mukhtar Bey), an Egyptian officer (Yusuf Ahmed, 1960) listed lemons, a
sour orange-like fruit (safargen) and fourteen types of grapes, opium poppy, pumpkins and
cotton. Burton mentioned (Yusuf Ahmed, 1961) plantations of coffee, bananas, citrons, limes,
cotton and sugar cane. He also mentioned pomegranates locally referred to as rumman. Figs,
beans, halibut (which when powdered has a bitter taste and is used in soup), sunflower, ufu (red
seeds often used for medical purposes), two kinds of pepper, henna and cabbage, together with
196
Exports And Imports
In earlier times selling fruits from your farm was taboo. “Farmers who produced fruits
from their farm land distributed the same to their relatives, friends, and neighbors, leaving a
portion for one’s own consumption” (Yusuf Ahmed, 1960, p. 383). Hence, with the exception of
fruits, some of the farm products were either consumed or taken to the local market where they
were either exported or exchanged for money or other products. Other products, therefore, were
After enumerating coffee and safflower as the principal commodities of the export trade
Burton (1894) states “the coffee of Harar is too well-known in the market of Europe to require
description” (pp. 192-193). The quantity was 200-300 tons per year. Chat with a market price of
a quarter of Indian rupees per parcel was another commodity that was either consumed locally or
exported to Aden. About 280 camel loads consisting of a number of parcels, each containing
about forty slender twigs with the leaves attached, and carefully wrapped so as to prevent as
much as possible exposure to the atmosphere were annually exported (Burton, 1894).
These trade items were brought to the Harar market by the Hararis and as Burton (1894)
noticed, by Oromos. Locally woven clothes-which according to Burton (1894) surpassed the
honey, mules, sorghum, wheat karanji (a kind of bread used by travelers) ghee and all sorts of
tallow were also brought to Harar and then exported to different parts of the world (Harris, 1844,
The Alla west of Harar supplied part of the coffee, tobacco and safflower which the
town's merchants sent to the coast. Others hunted elephant in the valleys south of Harar and
brought the ivory to the amir, who monopolized this trade; in exchange, they received cloth
197
imported from India or perhaps the finer variety which was woven in the town from locally
grown cotton. Besides ivory, ostrich feathers and musk were a monopoly of the royal family
(Burton, 1894). In addition, skin and hides (including lion and leopard), goats and sheep, cows
and oxen, donkeys, mules, horses, ostrich feathers, ivory civet and other agricultural products
were brought to Harar market either for local consumption or to be sent abroad (R. Pankhurst,
1968).
Slaves who were brought in from Kaffa and adjacent regions and bought in Harar for a
few meters of Indian textile or shell-beads called gurdummo (used by the Oromo women as
necklace), were also export items (Burton, 1894). It is mentioned that grandfather of Jalâllé (one
of the merchants from Showa mentioned earlier), and his business partners used to bring, each
turn, to the market of Abdul Rasul about 90 to 100 slaves who were used to transport amole chow
(blocks of salt) while they were steered to a market in search of the highest price (Ahmed
Hassen, 2001). When Burton visited Harar, women slaves were sold for 100 to 400 Ashraf and
the boys from 9 to 150 (Burton, 1894). After thirty years Paulitschke notes (Klemm, 2002)
Gurage girls from the interior disguised in Oromo Clothing fetched the higher price in the slave
market-80 Thalers. Boys between the ages of nine and ten were sold for 30-35 Thalers.
From the proceeds of the export, textiles consisting of European, American or Indian
sheeting, were imported. One type of the 'tay eraz' women's gown is called 'bombay' after the
striped, heavy silk with which the upper part of the dress is lined; this silk is said to have been
imported from India, i.e. Bombay,( Hitch, 1987). Also copper, zinc and lead, beads and coral-
colored silk thread, salt, dates, rice and sugar, paper, gunpowder, and rifles were all imported to
Harar either for immediate consumption or export to Abyssinia (Harris, 1844, p. 222; Yusuf
Ahmed, 1960, p. 395 and R. Pankhurst, 1968, p. 413). Corrugated iron and sewing machines
198
were also for the first time imported to Ethiopia by the Harari merchants (R. Pankhurst, 1968).
The British consular in Harar quoted by R. Pankhurst (1968) reported that quite a number
of houses had roofs from the corrugated material. There is story narrated by Harari elders that
Menelik’s palace was covered by such material delivered from Harar to stop the leaking drops of
water during the summer rains. Covering roofs with corrugated iron thus became a manifestation
of wealth and status. Second the importation of the sewing machines put Harar on an
advantageous position to those who used manual labor to produce cloth as it enabled the Hararis
to produce quality cloth in greater quantity and export it to other parts of Ethiopia.
(Schwartz & Bilsky, 1990, p. 879). When a few Amirs of Harar monopolized the export of
ivory, ostrich feathers and some other goods they promoted individualistic interests based on
power and when the big merchants helped the small ones they promoted collective interests.
Therefore, from the aforementioned discussion we can observe that not all Harar trade was based
This section discusses, how by being a venue for export and import trade and
consequently clearing-house for both goods which were imported and exported, Harar attained
the privilege of managing and collecting taxes from both exporting and importing business
activities. A key question is whether the Amirs, Egyptians and other tax-collectors treated
Characterizing the taxation system as simple, Burton (1894) stated that the cultivators
were taxed 10% of their harvest while traders were charged 16 cubits of cotton clothes per
199
donkey load when passing through any of the five gates. Moreover, according to Yusuf Ahmed
(1960) the Oromo farmers from some 30 miles northeast of the town seem to have been the
Amir’s tax-paying subjects. As mentioned by Abbas Ahmed (1992) during the reigns of Amir
Abd-alkarim and Amir Abu Baker the neighboring Oromo farmers paid the annual tax in cattle.
This type of tax was different from the tax that was paid by those Oromos who were
entrusted with the Amirs’ herds and returned some of the calves they bred as a form of tax or
rental (Caulk, 1977). There were also taxes which were levied by the Amir on every slave
passing through his dominion from Shawa and taxes collected from storage services.
Nevertheless, as Salt notes (R. Pankhurst, 1968), early in the 19 th century the Amirs were
exempted from paying taxes on the ivory and coffee they exported and on items they imported.
Yusuf Ahmed (1961) and Muhammad Hassen (1973) mention the garad or the damin,
who were in the administrative hierarchy of the Emirate of Harar, were responsible for collecting
taxes and tithes. Tolls and other fees as well as other taxes from the peasants were also collected
by the powerful Oromo chiefs in alliance with Hararis (Caulk, 1977, Shelter & Dewit).This
lucrative role may have convinced the Oromos of the value of preserving Harar with its great
market. For instance, while the Jarso and their neighbors were exacting payments clan by clan
for passage through their territory Caulk (1977), and Klemm (2002) mention the distant pass
along the commercial route from Zeila to Harar was controlled by the two Oromo clans who year
pay tribute to Oromo chiefs, thus draining wealth from Harar (Waldron, 1984). The Hararis thus
withdrew their support from Amir Muhammad and he was ousted and finally killed by the
Egyptian forces. What led Egypt to occupy Harar had been discussed by many scholars
200
including: E. Sylvia Pankhurst (1958); Avishai Ben-Dror (2008); and Caulk (1971, 1975). The
Egyptian intention to build an empire that encompassed the whole Nile basin and the Red Sea
was mentioned as one of the reasons that led Egyptians to occupy Harar. From some political
and economic reforms the Egyptian had taken after occupation, some say modernization of Harar
could be another reason. Thus, when the Egyptians occupied Harar they took over the power of
collecting taxes from both the Emirate of Harar and the Oromos. According to the Shawa
merchant who kept diaries preserved for a generation the taxes levied by the Egyptians were
Menelik II was the king of Shawa when he started preparations to occupy Harar. Why,
did, he give priority to the occupation? One of the reasons could be to put his hand on any
property or cash that could enable him to pay for the arms he purchased from abroad. Thus,
Harar served as an advance base for Menelik’s army to penetrate to the east to Somali land and
southeast of the Awash Valley which is rich in resources to supply export items necessary to pay
for arms trade and logistics (Barnes, 2001). He derived revenue from commercial agriculture
based on the export of Harar coffee to pay for fire arms from Assab and the Bay of Tajura.
Furthermore, Harar possessed a custom house where there was a regular cash supply (Caulk,
1971).
As it was further mentioned by Caulk (1971) and other scholars, Harar was full of
software and hardware required for modernization. Harar provided Menelik with European trade
and ideas. He acquired plenty of ammunition and stores left behind at Harar by the Egyptian
army. Other reasons could be strategic importance both from an international and domestic
perspectives, such as to halt the potential expansion of Turks and Egyptians and the threat of
201
expansion of some European countries, such as France, whose reconnaissance visited the Bay of
From the domestic view point, it was strategic to have trade arms free from those
Ethiopian princes who controlled the transit trade northwards of Shawa. There were about ten or
so Europeans in Shoa who were engaged in arms traffic; Pierre Labatut was the most prominent
(Nicholl, 1997). Another reason could be, to have a free hand in fighting the Italian aggression
Menelik, probably, anticipated, i.e. not to be stabbed from behind according to Harari historian
Sheik Ahmed Kebu104. The final outcome of all was to expand and consolidate the Christian
Empire (Gibb, 1999). After occupation he introduced a tax system that enabled the merchants to
pay their taxes at Harar. That had put Harar in an advantageous positions for all the bulk of the
Shoan trade passed through Harar, which gave confidence to Menelik to pledge the Harar
customs revenue as a guarantee of interest and repayment for the 4,000,000 lire loan from Italy.
When Menelik sent Ras Makonen to Rome to sign a Treaty the Italian Government agreed to
lend Menelik 4,000,000 lire on the security of the customs of Harar (Starkie, 1938). That the
trade of Harar should be used as collateral at this point to secure an international loan suggests
the value of the regional centre to the overall economy of the country (R. Pankhurst, 1968).
Harar, therefore, had experienced various types of taxation under different rulers, rich sources of
The application of some principles of taxation may improve trade while others may retard
it and bring impoverishment, riots or even revolution. Whenever the tax imposed by any tax
collector is fair it enhances economic development. On the other hand, whenever taxes are
Pankhurst (1968) one of the Amirs, who exported coffee and ivory, was exempted from paying
104
Personal communication on June 30, 2011
202
taxes. As noted by Caulk (1977) notables of Oromos who were given the old Harari title Garad
were also exempted from paying a tithe on their harvest and herds to Egyptians.
Furthermore, a diary recorded by Jalâllé's father (Shoan merchant) tells the story of heavy
taxation imposed on the local merchants by the Egyptians during their occupation of Harar. The
statements in this document, which discuss this period, contain the following:
አወይ የሰው ነገር በቃኝን አያውቅም፡፡እማያገባው አገር ሐረር መጥቶ ይክን ኩሉ ክፈሉ ብሎ በእኛ በባላገር ላይ
143).
In English script
“awey yesew neger beqagnin ayawqem. Emayagebaw ager Harar metito yeken kulu
kefelu belo benegna bebalager lay meqretu … benasu mekeniat yadam zer Harar lay
My translation:
Human beings are greedy. It is unfair for a foreign power to invade another country and impose
such heavy tax. Hope they will understand how much the descendants of Adam are suffering
According to Jalâllé‘s explanation the Egyptian forces imposed such heavy taxes because
they, as the occupying force, did not care for the local merchants. It seems, therefore, there were
groups, maybe Egyptian merchants, who received favorable treatment while the local ones did
not. That discrimination, therefore, was, according to Jalâllé, contrary to one of the basic
principles of taxation, i.e. fairness (Smith, 1978). The occupying forces might have determined
the amount of taxes payable not on the basis of income of the individual merchant, but on
nationality.
203
Yet Jalâllé used the term yadam zer meaning descendants of Adam to refer to those who
suffered from the heavy tax imposed by the occupying forces. If that was the case, there was no
discrimination based on nationality. The unfairness, therefore, might have related to its failure to
The tax collected by the Egyptians was not limited to traders. As Caulk (1977) noted, “in
1882, one-third of the taxes reported to Cairo were levied from payments of those submitting to
obtain peace. Another third came from fees for new titles. Even Oromo women were selling their
various products in exchange for cash to pay tax” (p. 382). It might be that the Egyptian power
imposed those multiple heavy taxes to pay salaries to its soldiers who might have transferred that
payment wholly or partly as a remittance to their country through the Egyptian Bank established
in Harar. On top of the occupying forces tax system being discriminatory it was, therefore,
Agency
Some Amirs were engaged in trade. For instance, a manuscript analyzed by Yusuf
Ahmed (1961) throws some light on the register of trade goods acquired by the Amirs as private
traders. Burton (1894) also mentioned that ivory and ostrich feather trading was monopolized by
Amir Ahmed (1852-1855). According to Burton (1894) and Yusuf Ahmed (1961) the Amirs did
their import and export business through a wakil or agent. Abdullah Idris, Abdurrahman
Ghazzali and Ali Sadik were mentioned as agents of Amir Muhammad (1856-1875). Those
agents would entrust the goods to caravan protectors known as abban, who in return handed over
204
The abban or caravan protector (Yusuf Ahmed, 1961) usually belonged to the Issa or the
Gadabursi clans, and gave carrier services not only to the Amirs. They were entrusted with
export or import goods by individuals who were financially capable of organizing a complete
caravan consisting of 30 or more camel or donkey loads. Merchants unable to carry on export
trade individually in such a scale came together and cooperated to share the cost among
themselves. These cooperating merchants would also sell and buy goods, purchasing in the
markets of Berberah and Zayla for traders who could not join the caravan (Yusuf Ahmed, 1961).
In doing so, the cooperating merchants were enhancing the welfare of small merchants.
In modern business, the owner of a haulage truck or lorry, for instance, promises to
maintain it in perfect working order and with full equipment including good tires, tools, jacks
and everything necessary for the quick transport of goods. Similarly, in those days when abban
(from Somali or Oromo chiefs) made an agreement with traders or their agents, it was their
responsibility to provide healthy and strong camels, mules or donkeys for the quick and safe
transport of goods. They were also responsible to protect the merchandise from theft,
The abban, on top of providing protection to the caravan and making available
transportation, he provided guides who would lead the caravan to its destination. That seems the
reason they are mentioned as travelers guides by Ahmed Hassen (2001). “Whenever a merchant
wanted to dispatch his goods he made his arrangement through the abban. Once the goods were
loaded and passed to him, it was the abban who was responsible for their delivery at the place of
destination which was usually Berberah, Zayla, or Tajura, along the coast, or else Ifat, Awsa, or
Bale in the interior” (Ahmed Hassen, p. 143). Certainly, they would also give similar services
from those places back to Harar as well. Thus, they were guided by two very important values,
205
i.e. national security and social order based on safety, harmony, and stability of society
(Schwartz, 1994).
According to Waldron (1984) the abban were Somali agents who took care of the
caravan when it crossed areas held by the Somalis. In areas resided by the Oromos the abban
probably had to make new arrangements with the local chiefs to travel across those areas or
make payments to the Jarso and their neighbors who were exacting payments, clan by clan, for
passage. “The Nole, as well, despite their reputation for fierceness, were hospitable to
merchants, during the Egyptian occupation at least, because they also hired the change of
transport required when leaving the lowland, Issa territory for the climb towards Harar” (Caulk,
1977, p. 372) .
Though Yusuf Ahmed (1961) tells that some Somalis who held the transportation in
monopoly exposed the merchants to abuse and extortion, the abbans who were acting on behalf
of Amir or ordinary citizens were acting adhering to the values related with agency. From the
side of the abban it could be assumed that acting with good faith, acting in the exclusive interest
of the merchants, account all the profits accruing to the merchant, act as bonus paterfamilias, etc.
were some of the values the abban were promoting. Remunerating the abban for what he
accomplished, advancing or reimbursing expenses and costs incurred by the abban to carry out
the agency, and releasing the abban from any liability he incurred while carrying out his duty in
the interest of the merchants were some of the values adhered to by the merchants.
To illustrate this Stitz (1975) told a story of a Harari who traveled to Ifat and died while
returning in 1863 taking cloth belonging to four other people and their donkeys. The Qadi
distributed the profit among those whose goods he had sold but first deducted the expenses the
deceased had incurred on his way. Stitz (1975) also tells how, when leaving for Ifat or to the
206
coast for trade. Harari merchants entrusted their town property to a friend or a Qadi who would
receive and carefully administer it for the benefit of the merchants and their families. In one case
the Qadi rented the garden of a man who left for trading for a sharecropper, regularly sold the
crops paying the wife of the owner a yearly allowance. Moreover, the Qadi had the houses and
walls of the absentee Harari repaired, covering the cost from the absentee man’s rents.
Ordinary traders came together and cooperated to share the cost among themselves as
well as to help small merchants in selling and purchasing at destinations of which they could not
have access. In doing so they were promoting what Moore and Bruder (2005) refer to as
utilitarian values according to which one ought to seek the greatest pleasure for the greatest
number of people.
Contrary to that, a few Amirs monopolized ivory and Ostrich feather trade as well as
exempted themselves from paying taxes. It could be said they were promoting a value referred to
as egoistic ethical hedonism, according to which one ought to seek his or her own pleasure
(Moore and Bruder, 2005). Hence, these values were governing the relations between small
traders and big traders on the one hand, and between the ordinary Hararis and Amirs on the other
hand.
As can be seen from the following incident, agency and noble values related with it were
not confined to trade alone. Yusuf Ahmed (1961) described the novel responsibilities that were
entrusted to Ali Sadik by the Amir as an agent. Yusuf Ahmed (1961) described how Ali Sadik,
as the guardian of Muhammad Haji Bule, an insane, acted in the exclusive interest of
Muhammad till death took the latter. Finally, after accounting to Muhammad’s wife, Ali Sadik
handed over the legacy to her. Yusuf Ahmed (1961) further described how the same Ali acted as
the guardian and tutor of an old mother and a minor of a deceased. After the death of the old
207
mother and the minor attained majority Ali handed the legacy to the son in the presence of
witnesses.
Juno, whose temple at Rome was used for coining money. Therefore, Mint (coinage) is
establishment for making coins, or pieces of metal designed to circulate as money (Encarta,
2009). Harar also had its own coinage where the old Harari currency called the Mahaleq was
coined.
Barker (1842) and Ahmed Zekaria (1997) while discussing Harar coin, mentioned a small
copper coin called Mahaleq; 22 units of which were equal to a nominal coin called ashraf, while
40 units of the latter are equal to one German Crown. The Mahaleq, which was derived from the
Harari word Maheleq (to count), resembles the diwani of Jeddah, with one side inscribed in
Arabic characters La illaha illa-Allah and the reverse the name of the reigning prince
(Harris,1844). A similar description was given by Burton (1894) about the coins of Amir
Ahmed.
The combination of the phrase La illaha illa-Allah and the name of the reigning prince on
the coin could be a reflection of the close alliance between religious institutions and the
administration of Harar. In history various symbols are used by different countries on their coins.
For instance, the coins and paper money of the United States have the official Great Seal of the
Bald Eagle. We find this seal also on the passport issued by the United States to its citizens. In
similar fashion to the Bald Eagle, the La illaha illa-Allah might have constituted the symbol of
Harar.
208
Payments by merchants were not, however, always made in those coins. Clothes, either
locally made or imported, or salt could be accepted to secure passage, for instance. As noted by
Ahmed Zekaria (1991) amole chew, salt bars, or blocks of salt, piece of clothes or iron, gun
cartridges, and Maria Theresa dollars were some of the media of exchange used in the earlier
periods of Harar. While there is no express reference to constant cash transactions in literature, it
could be assumed the currencies used in Harar were most probably referred to as ashraf and
Harari currencies displayed at the Permanent Exhibition of the Sheriff Harar City
Museum105 take back the use of coins in Harar to 871 A.D. while Kahl (1969) extends the period
of coinage from 742 A.D. through 1887. Though Ahmed Zekaria (1997) noted “the consistent
use of currency had started with the reign of Abd al Shakur (1756-1783)” (p. 25) a document
reveals Amir Talha, who ruled Harar from 1111-1134 bought real property for 300 ashraf
(Wagner, 1974).
Cruttenden notes (Ahmed Zekaria, 1991) Harar coins were in the form of gold, copper or
silver and were in use beyond the boundaries of Harar. Abbas Ahmed (1992) also mentioned
their circulation in such areas as Ifat, Churcher, Zayla and Barbra, giving example how a widow
living in Ifat and whose husband was Muhammad Yayaha al Dulal received 39 Ashraf as an
inheritances.
As Burton (1894) noted some Amirs, for instance Amir Ahmed (1852-1855), had the
intention to limit the use of the currency within the city of Harar. Dr. Freeman-Grenville
recorded (R. Pankhurst, 1968) the discovery of two coins issued by Amir Abdullahi (1885-1887)
on the Benadir coast of present day Somalia. Harar coins were in use “as far as Ras Asseyr on the
Somali coast, Mogadishu, Chelenko” (Ahmed Zekaria, 1991, p. 26). The circulation of the Harar
105
Opened on 24th December 2008
209
coins outside Harar could be taken as evidence of the strength and influence of the Harar
Other currencies were also in circulation in Harar. For instance, Barker (1842) tells that
Maria Theresa dollars were used as currency in addition to the Harari coins. Riyal Qarshi and
other types of currencies were once in circulation in Harar. During the Egyptian occupation
Harar had two currencies, Harari and Egyptian side by side (Ahmed Zekaria, 1991).
Furthermore, when the British ended Egyptian occupation and took over the administration of
Harar they paid Indian rupees for those Hararis and Somalis they trained to protect Harar when
Even Menelik II minted his first local currency-referred to as Mahaleq made of silver,
approximately 15mm in diameter, and bearing the date 1892-at Harar (Kahl, 1969 & Wood,
1936). The utilization of various currencies with different units of value presupposes free market
(Rothbard, 2002) and money exchangers who did the exchange in open air usually at market
places as depicted by Blundell (1900). As it will be seen in the next section, the determination of
prices by various factors and not by the government also constitutes evidence of the free market
in Harar.
It was noted earlier that there were many foreign merchants doing import/export
business. The Egyptian army was probably paid in cash, unlike those who were either granted
land or paid in kind for their service. It is, therefore, plausible to assume ordinary money
exchangers could not satisfy the existing demand for the exchange and supply of money.
Therefore, the Egyptians founded the Egyptian branch bank referred to as the Egyptian Bank in
Harar to provide foreign exchange service to those foreigners and Harari merchants engaged in
210
This raises the question, where did the merchants hoard their extra money or where did
they borrow the money to run their business before the establishment of the Egyptian Bank?
There were four possibilities. One could hoard the money in a secret place, for instance burying
it in the ground within ones compound; or trust the money with a friend or a Qadi as merchants
did when they left for the port or inland; or keep it with gilders, especially with gold smiths, who
were accustomed to storing valuable and precious metals which could serve as guarantee. The
last option could be the Amir’s mint. All options bore risk, though, the risk of the last institution
could be very high for there could be a possibility of being confiscated by the Amir, as once in
British history Charles I who was in need of money in 1638, shortly before the outbreak of the
civil war, confiscated the huge sum of £200,000 of gold, calling it a “loan” from the owners
(Rothbard, 2002).
The individuals or gold smiths who were entrusted with the money probably lent it to
those who needed money to do business transactions. Both keeping the money and lending it
require confidence in the honesty, goodness, skill or safety of a person or institution. These were,
therefore, probably basic business ethics or values which were adhered to by the merchants in
Harar, and without which Harar would not have emerged as an intercontinental trade center.
The Egyptian Bank, as any other bank, probably did the following. Maybe it adjusted
domestic credit, managed a reserve of species or foreign exchange which stabilized exchange
rates, lent out the savings of others, and deposit money (Rothbard, 2002). To that end the
Egyptian Bank most likely won the confidence of the public, which is based on a basic value in
211
That seems the reason why the establishment of that bank signified the flourishing of the
already existing trade in quality and quantity. For instance, R. Pankhurst (1968) tells that
whereas scarcely 70 caravans had reached Harar every year under the Amirs the number soon
increased to about 400 under Egyptian rule. This enabled two currencies, i.e. Egyptian and
Harari, to circulate in Harar. As a passing remark it is worth mentioning that the Egyptian Bank,
preceded the Abyssinia Bank, which was established with the help of Egyptian Bank capital in
Even after the British expelled Egyptian army and Menelik occupied it, Harar continued
as an intercontinental business and trade center for a while. Some merchants who kept in their
logs persons they met with their seals and signatures, noted that there were eleven companies in
Harar engaged in import/export business while there were only four in Dire Dawa in 1903 (See
the annex). It is not surprising if the frequency of caravans coming to and going from Harar was
increased.
Setting Prices
As the following lines reflect, the prices of commodities were at least set by the market:
ዘጠና አምሰት በራ አምጥተናል…ዋጋውን እሱ ራሱ አላህ ያብጀው (Ahmed Hassen, 2001). In English script:
Zetana amest baara amtetenal. Wagawun esu rasu Allah yabejew. My translation: “We have
brought ninety five slaves. Let Allah himself take care of the price.” Burton (1894) reported that
the price of female slaves varied from 100 to 400 asharafi, and boys were sold from 9 to 150
asharafi. Similarly Burton (1894) also mentioned the market as a factor to determine the price of
chat.
212
Stitz (1975) also discussed some of the factors which determined the value of land. The
fact that it is irrigated or not irrigated was reason to bring variation in prices. According to an
example cited by him, while irrigated land was priced for 100 ashraf, non-irrigated land was
only 10 ashraf. Availability of water, exposition, the elevation, the steepness of the terrain, the
distance from town and the security were other factors which determined the price of the land.
Abbas Ahmed (1992) mentions additional factors, such as the presence of trees and the fertility
of the soil.
The pricing also used to be adjusted with inflation as can be seen from a case in the Qadi
register which was analyzed by Stitz (1975). An owner of a house leased his house taking into
account the coming inflation. So in the lease contract, which was concluded in 1838, it was
provided for a fixed increase of the rent to 50 ashraf in the second year, 60 in the third year and
70 in 1841. The type of the materials used to build the house, depreciation and other related
factors as well determined the price of the house. For instance, in1825-1830 an average wooden
house was sold for 6 ashraf while a stone house was sold for 183 ashraf (Abbas Ahmed 1992).
Stitz praised the Hararis as people with the ability to think in economic terms and
understand the functioning of a money economy. Money economy, however, may not exist
without the basic principle or value which is described by Adam Smith (1987) as the invisible
hand, by the Ifat merchant as Allah and as various factors by the manuscript analyzed by Stitz
(1978). Hence, the non-interference policy of the Amirs in the market and determination of the
prices by the market was the value that governed the relationship between sellers and buyers.
Nevertheless, there was a time when Amir Uthman al-Habashi (1567-1589), Amir Nur’s
successor, granted the Oromos the right to purchase imported cloth at a price fixed by the
government for the Oromos in return to leave Harar to survive as a convenient market place
213
(Waldron, 1984). This was one of the prices paid by the Hararis to preserve their walled city
from being attacked by the Oromos. The free flow of currencies and the determination of prices
by the market were necessary for Harar to prosper. Property rights, which were essential for free
market, as will be seen next, were upheld by the Hararis as a basic requirement for prosperity.
Property Rights
Even though the trading of ivory, ostrich feathers, and other items were monopolized by
some Amirs and their families; the basic values related to property rights were respected i.e.
economic freedom: the rights to acquire, use, transfer and dispose of private property. This was
mainly manifested by the title deed issued by the Harari government after registering the
immovable property once the claimant proved the ownership right he/she had over the property.
Property was either transferred for consideration or gratuitously. Both were the rights of
the Hararis. They were also entitled to lease their house or land (Ahmed Zekaria.1997). From the
Account-Book of Amir Abd Al-Shakur analyzed by Ahmed Zekaria (1997) it is also understood
that immovable properties, land and houses were transferred either through inheritance, sales,
gifts or Mahr, through a contract made in the presence of witnesses, sealed and registered by the
Qadi. Sijil (register) and Diwan (chancery) were the two institutions where the registration of the
immovable property was made and the copy of the title deed was kept (Wagner, 1974).
The registration, witnesses, and the Qadi would enable Hararis to implement one very
important ethic or value of business, i.e. pacta sunt servanda, sanctity of a contract. (DiMatteo,
2000) “For it prevents injustice and dissention by keeping in memory for all times, how by it (i.e.
the register and the chancery) the judicial decisions are made effective the Holy Law…what was
settled of that which nobody should be free from being strictly bound to it may it be the dowry or
214
anything else, so that a demand should not be repeated and dissent should not exist” (Wagner,
1974, p. 218)106
Furthermore, one of the manuscripts analyzed by Stitz (1975) describes the task of the
Qadi as keeping records which deals with inheritance, dispute and transactions so that there
should be no trouble and conflict later on. The value which respects the rights citizens have over
106
Emphasis added
215
CHAPTER SEVEN: THE RELEVANCY OF VALUES IN SELF-REGULATION OF
SOCIAL INSTITUTIONS
Introduction
When Cain, the elder son of Adam, killed his younger brother Abel and was confused
about what to do with the corpse, the Bible and the Quran describe how God sent a raven to
show him how to bury his brother’s corpse. From that time on, probably, individuals have been
coming together to help one another in various social activities such as interments and wedding
ceremonies.
Hararis have established a variety of social institutions to achieve various social objectives.
These institutions are mugaad, afocha, jamaa or baha, ahli, marign, and gel. Different scholars
conducted studies on these social institutions. Duri Mohammad (1955) wrote short note on how
boys’ mugaad and girls’ mugaad were organized by boys and girls at a similar age and from the
same neighborhood to celebrate festivals, especially Arafa, in which they exchanged food as
gifts while singing and dancing. Waldron (1975b) studied how Hararis use Afocha, ahli, marign
and gel to control individual and social behaviors. Hecht (1980) studied afocha and baha visa-vis
the social status of Harari women. Huurne (2004) elaborated on the role of afocha and baha in
poverty reduction.
But little or none had been said about the values that underlie and regulate these
institutions and their members. This chapter attempts to identify those values and discuss how
they regulate the institutions and their members. As ahli is a basic social unit second to a family
216
in the Harari community, it would be worthy to start the discussion with it. Next gel and marign
will be discussed as they are not as complex. Afocha as an old institution will be discussed, to be
followed by jamaa.
Ahli
Waldron (1978) described ahli as the family network. Leslau (1963) on the other hand,
defined it as relatives and classified it into dad ahli, qama basar ahli, urus gey ahli, and ingir gey
ahli. Whereas dad ahli is a relative by friendship, qama basar ahli is a relative by blood and
flesh, i.e. consanguinity, relationship that comes from the same descendants. As Abba Abubakar
Yusuf noted107, ahli could as well be classified into metwaaled ahli (relative by consanguinity)
and metnaasa ahli (affinity relatives). Kabir Abdulmuheiman classified108 Ahli into dam ahli
(relative by blood), dad ahli (relative through friendship), nasab ahli (affinity) and jar ahli
(relatives through neighbor-ship). Other than jar ahli there is no difference between Abba
Hence, Hararis, besides having bonds of relationship derived from community of blood
and bonds of affinity derived from marriage, they have bonds of relations that emanate from
consanguinity is calculated by counting seven generations on one’s aw gey (paternal) and I gey
(maternal side). Hamaachi gey is another name for metnaasa or nasab ahli. In this category we
find dumaal (the husband’s brothers and friends), shoot (sister-in-law) hamaachi (father-in-law)
and hamat (mother-in-law). Friendship is important for Hararis as it has gained high prestige as
brotherhood.
107
Interview 21/11/2013 in Harar
108
Interview 26/11/2013
217
Qama basar ahli includes paternal ascendants, descendants and collaterals that are
referred to as urus gey ahli or simply aw gey, and maternal ascendants, descendants and
collaterals who are ingir gey ahli or simply I gey. Your mother and father are ayaa and awaa,
respectively. Your father’s and mother’s fathers are your baabaa while their mothers are umma.
You address your elder brother and sister as abba and abbay respectively. Anna (father’s sister)
and ezaira (father’s brother) including their descendants are urus gey ahli whereas ekhesta
(mother’s sister) and kaka (mother’s brother) including their descendants are ingir gey ahli.
Elder brothers are like fathers as elder sisters are like mothers in the absence of fathers and
mothers. As pointed out by Muhammad Abdurrahman (1984/1992) to indicate this Hararis say
zigadara abba awenta zigaderti abbay ayete meaning the elder brother is a father as the elder
sister is a mother. Elder brothers took the responsibility of leading the family where the father is
not in a position to play his fatherly role for whatever reason. Likewise, elder sisters assist their
mothers in bringing up their young sisters and brothers and substitute their mothers in running
the household where the mother is absent for whatever reason109. Hence, the elder brothers and
sisters are respected by their younger ones while the elders love and care for the younger ones.
It seems mothers are ‘favored’ in Harari community. To express this Hararis use different
idioms. I totsekut kotmelte (Muhammad Abdurrahman, 1994) meaning a mother is not double
like her breasts. She is, in her relation with her children, free from any kind of prejudice and
discrimination that could arise from principles of double standard. She treats her children fairly
and equally. Hence, values of fairness govern the relations mothers have with their children. That
seems the reason why Hararis say weldile alawa qaram ela meaning children cannot be
109
Personal experience
218
segregated as sorghum cane and sorghum Stover. Hence, it is proper to learn fairness from one’s
mother.
This, however, does not mean all children in a given family are treated similarly and have
similar understanding and comprehension. There is variation that could be attributed by Hararis
to a mother’s womb, which is pictured as a tawny color like a tiger as it is described by a Harari
idiom that runs I karsiseze ganguracuta boraborenta. Depending on the background and
experience each member of a family could have his or her own values priority. Hence, they
differ, for instance, on the profession they prefer, or ideology they promote or political party they
support.
Your cousins are your sisters or brothers, for your uncles and your aunts are your fathers
and mothers, respectively. There is no distinction between your father and your uncle. Neither is
there a difference between your mother and your aunts. As noted by Cobbah (1987) like Akan of
Ghana for Hararis all aunts are mothers, i.e. older mothers and younger mothers as cousins are
The relation between colleagues, or classmates, or neighbors, etc. could grow into dad
ahli. A father introduces his friends to his children as ezaira, while a mother does her friends as
ekhesta or anna. One is ezaira or kaka or anna or ekhesta to friends’ children. These friends may
introduce their parents to their friends’ parents and probably that relation eventually may grow
into dad ahli. Hence, from one dad ahli additional dad ahli could grow.
Similarly, one’s elder sister’s or brother’s friends are elder brothers, as one’s younger
brothers’ and sisters’ friends are one’s younger brothers and sisters, respectively. They are dad
ahli. Kabir Abdulmuheiman was reminded by his father that he was the son of all Afocha
members. It could, therefore, be stated one’s father afocha members are ezaira, one’s mother
219
afocha members would be designated as ekhesta or anna. And their children will have
Hence, one could be a child, an older or younger brother or sister of any Harari. Or one
could be, through dad ahli, awaa, ayaa, ezaira, kaka, anna or ekhesta of any Harari child. Harari
community is, therefore, wholly interconnected. One Harari individual is in one way or another
ahli to another Harari. Hence, Hararis warn not to backbite a fourth individual in a conversation
of three individuals, for any of the two could be relative of against whom you make spiteful
tells his friend to pinch him if a third person joins them while they are gossiping. Hence, the
application of gossip to control the behavior of members is limited by the close kinship relations
Hence, the community looks after an individual whether young or old. That could be an
apparent reason why Hararis, as a community, believe that they do not have beggars but poor
people. Some of the idioms confirm this. Hararis believe that begging is like a hell as they say
usu fitbe maqaanen azabinta meaning begging is like standing in front of a hell. Even while a
Harari mother does not have anything to feed her family she would pretend by starting fire at her
hearth to produce smoke to make people believe that she is preparing food.
Hence, she prefers kitchen fire to hell fire. Even if the benefactor arrives at her home he
would not put the money in her hands. Rather, he secretly puts it under a nadaba carpet, which
she collects after he leaves her house. This is to accept and respect what she believes to be her
value, i.e. dignity that governs the relation between the benefactor and the beneficiary.
220
Sometimes wealthy ahli may not help his needy ahli. Eventually, when the latter dies,
nevertheless, as noted by Abdulla Abdurrahman (1953a) specially, the women “tear their gowns,
which are minutely decorated with colorful hand-knitting” (p. 16). Hararis respond to this
paradox saying hull ziqebatulole hullan qadadulo, meaning they tear their gowns for a deceased
to whom they failed to provide cabbage while he was alive. Through this idiom Hararis would
like to govern the behavior of wealthy individuals by appealing to their sense of unselfish
concern for the welfare of others, i.e. altruism, compassion and kindheartedness, which are core
During childhood immediate family and relatives look after the child. The community
guides the child when he is young. They help the child to attend school by putting pressure on
the child’s family if they fail to send him to school. If they find the child committing wrong they
would admonish the child. Old individuals would not be thrown away in a retirement home but
taken care of at their children’s home surrounded by their children, grandchildren and other
relatives. Tenderness and love are some of the values that regulate some of the relations between
and among ahli. Hence, to care for important social institutions such as marriage and family, the
societal functions of child care and the care of the aged are the concern of ahli.
Hamaachi gey refers to affinity relatives. It includes ascendants and descendants as well
as collaterals of both spouses, i.e. in-laws. Hamaachi alone means male relatives on the
husband’s or the wife’s side. The mother-in-law is hamat. The Harari adage that expresses the
high value this relation has in the community runs: “kurunubayu hamaachim alfarakiewm”,
“even affinity relative would not stand a push from the elbow.” Hamaachi shares every problem
221
To begin with, Hararis assist their children to start family. The son with his wife, after
marriage, stays for the whole one year in tit gar at his family compound provided with food and
other provisions essential to daily life. This practice is called sabata mowatta. In one family four
brothers spent one year each with their wives looked after by their mother in tit gar after
concluding marriage. 110 As pointed by Cobbah (1987) Harari family, as any African family, is
Hararis would like these relations which are governed by values of care and affection to continue
forever, saying ahli wa lihdi, alagawa uga (Muhammad Abdurrahman, 1992) meaning
individuals say their farewells to their relatives at graveyards and at their door steps to their
Ahli could face various challenges that could endanger its foundation. Inheritance is one.
Politics and sects in religion are also creating gaps within the ahli. Hence, where ahlinat is weak
Hararis equate it with a salt immersed in water saying tiri assunat ahli miy zinakeiwsa yumaahi
meaning relation that is not built on proper foundation dissolves like a salt immersed in water.
Hence, to create, foster, and make strong ahlinat Hararis utilize values of love, trust, respect,
Consider how ahli is, for instance, related with humanity. Hararis say ‘ahli zalela usunatum ela,
meaning one who is without ahli does not have humanity. He is not, therefore, kind and
from the following sayings. Qamu qonatugir satelqaam yahachal, meaning the whole body
reacts if a limb is pinched. Or ufu mahtogir in tibakat, meaning the punch on a nose causes the
110
Personal experience
222
eyes to cry. Hence, you have to have ahli who would react to whatever happens to you.
inseparable part of ahli like any limb is part of one’s body, and he is dead if he does not have any
ahli as any limb of one’s body is dead once it is separated from the main body. In short, an
individual without ahli is like a fish out of water. As Davidson (1969) put it, “Go the way that
many people go; if you go alone, you will have reason to lament” (p.31). This is an African value
All types of ahli may not be treated likewise. While Ezair is matched with ezrail (angle
of death) saying ezaire ezrail, kaka is associated with Kura kabir (a raven designated as a
blessed creature), saying kake Kura Kabir. Kaka is further referred to as tut zalela I, a mother
without breast. Similarly, all dad ahlach are not equal. For instance, certain marignach are
referred to as asli marign, i.e. best friend. He is the one who is chosen as the best man of the
groom. Correspondingly, the best friend of the girl is chosen as henna gel. They are the ones who
did the Disciples to Jesus and Sahaba (companion) to Prophet Muhammad. The Virgin Mary’s
visit to Elizabeth is an expression of gelnat. Even God’s chosen ones, as human beings, need the
companionship of friends. Every human being, therefore, has somebody to be with in his life
time who is emotionally close, who stands by when one faces problem, and who one trusts. This
relationship, therefore, emanates from the very nature of human being. Hararis are not unique to
this. While the girls have a friend who they call gel, boys refer to their friends as marign.
223
Leslau (1963) defines gel as companion for girls or friend for girls. It is, therefore,
friendship between two or more girls who accompany each other or share time with one another.
The corresponding friendship for boys is marign. Waldron (1978) did not deal with gel. He,
however, mentioned marign as friendship formed by five to ten close male friends of the same
age and who live in one toya, neighborhood. Besides, it has been seen that marignat (friendship)
could be formed and fostered among Quran gey Ashidayach (class-mates) or among relatives
How important marignat and gelnat are in Harari society is manifested from the weight
given by mothers to these social institutions. A mother consults her son’s marign or daughter’s
gel when she thinks it important to help her son or daughter come out of any problem. For
instance, if any one of them or both of them are late for marriage she will have a consultation
with her son’s marign or daughter’s gel. Even if she wants to identify whether the problem is
physical or psychological she, before approaching a professional, first collects information from
the marign or gel. The mother does this for she knows the important place marignat or gelnat has
As an illustration an individual who lives in Addis Ababa running his own business yet
not married could be considered. Whenever any of her son’s marignach visits her, his mother
discusses her son’s single life and how much she longed to hug her grandchild. Even she asked
his friends to try to identify his problem so that she may either consult a witch or medical doctor.
This informs how important marignat is in the social life of Hararis. Next is a discussion on how
If two or more boys or girls are neighbors, they start playing together in one of their
compounds or houses till they are mature enough to join the Quran gey or madrasah. At this
224
stage they refer to their marign or gel as afar-afar marign or afar-afar gel. As afar is the soil
they use to play with, it indicates the ability of Harari children to convert the material around to
satisfy their need and the early time the relationship has started. Soil here serves as a link among
marignach. It also indicates at what level the economy of the community is.
Attaining a certain age they join Quran gey or madrasah or any other modern school.
They accompany each other to and from the Quran gey or school where they promote their
marignat or gelnat by collecting and sharing teaching aid materials, sharing ukhat and playing
qutti, qutti. At this phase they are allowed to be together only at day time.
While they are attending the Quran gey or madrasah or school other boys and girls may
join their circle and enlarge their number. As they mature, the boys could be allowed to stay
together for longer hours. For instance, they build a small room called soman derbi, in a large
compound that belongs to any of them, and spend the Ramadan night together. This room could
serve as a study room when they join madrasah or modern school. These boys live together in
one dormitory if they are successful in joining higher education. It is not unusual to find pockets
of Harari boys and girls living in one dormitory in Addis Ababa University. 111
The girls also stay together in and outside the Quran gey or madrasah. When they
complete the Quran gey they attend ashir gar together from Maghreb and Isha Salat if there is
one. The girls, assembling at a house called moy gar, learn basketwork or train in embroidery if
they do not join madrasah or other modern school. Similar to the boys, if they join higher
education, they stay in one dormitory. When they graduate or start business, their marignat or
gelnat continues and develops into jamaa, a social institution with formality. When they marry
111
Personal experience
225
For instance, one group consisting of boys has been marign from childhood while some
joined later.112 All of them are married except three of them. Nevertheless, their marignat has not
yet grown into jamaa. One of the reasons could be their preference to keep their relation a less
And yet whenever one of their marign faces a problem they assist him financially or
through other means to come out of that. For instance, they contribute Br. 100 to assist their
marign, who is preparing for zagan. They also accompany him to his future bride’s home to
deliver presents and kusha chat. At his belachu they serve the guests with food and soft drinks.
Most likely they are the best men on his aroz megba. Here, values of helpfulness and honesty
They always stand by him whenever he is in trouble. For instance, if death takes away
any of his beloved ones they share his grief, escorting him for three consecutive days. They
respect each other’s parents like their own and likewise receive love and duwaa (blessing) from
their marign parents. For instance, they visit each other’s parents at the first days of Ramadan.
This visitation is called aboradena hamdi. In Ramadan, dividing the thirty chapters of the Quran
among themselves, each marign reads at his home the chapter(s) allotted for him. When
everybody finishes his part they come together and complete the Quran together in the ritual
called makhtam. Mutual respect, understanding, love and tolerance among them are the
fundamental values that govern the relations among them. The relations they have with the
parents of their marign are governed by values of politeness, obedience, honoring parents and
elders.
112
Group discussion with Adham Ibrahim’s friends on 20/12/2013
226
Before winding this part down it is worthy to mention one incident that narrates the
importance of marignat in the social fabric of Harari society. While marignach are playing if one
of them bleeds from his feet due to any type of accident, the injured one pleads to the rest of
marignach to pee on the part of his body that bleeds, believing that would help to stop the
bleeding and heal the wound. He does not contempt his friend’s urine. From experience we know
parents and families do not despise their children’s urine. From this it is understood how deep
the love each marign has for one another. It is similar to the love family members have to each
other. It is based on true friendship and loving that starts as afar-afar marign or gel.
Afocha
of neighbors participating in various social activities, such as wedding and funeral. According to
this definition afocha is formed by individuals residing in one locality to achieve some social
objectives. Ended individuals prefer to form afocha with other individuals living in the same
toya: one of the criteria to accept or reject new applications for membership. Earlier the
researcher’s application for afocha membership, as he resides in the suburb, was rejected by
Nevertheless, he joined toya afocha113 formed by Harari individuals living in his toya.
Their number does not exceed seven. Eventually, members of this toya afocha aspire to upgrade
it into a full-fledged afocha in the future when membership attains thirty, the minimum number
of individuals required to form afocha. The reason to have this minimum number goes along the
30 Suras (chapters) the Quran contains so that each member reads at least one Sura where
113
Harari use this term to describe the relationships and obligations they have with the people who live around them
(Waldron, 1978:8)
227
necessary. Hence, besides toyanat (neighborhood), number matters to establish full-blown
afocha.
The researcher was told by Mahdi Gadid, former Ethiopian Ambassador to mid-east, how
he faced a similar problem in joining afochach in downtown Addis Ababa and how his
application was accepted on the condition that the afocha would provide him only with burial
services in case he or any member of his family dies. For instance, they may not read Yasin and
Tabarak chapters from the Quran for three days after Mekhrib Salat which they perform under
normal circumstances. They, however, perform the four main duties of afocha, i.e. washing,
It could, therefore, be said afocha members are two types: Those who enjoy the full
services of the afocha and those who do not but fully assume the responsibilities. Moreover,
from what is noted afocha could be classified into a mainstream one that gives assistance in time
of sorrow and happiness, and toya afocha that engages in maintaining roads and houses, and
collecting garbage (Hurne, 2004) Huurne (2004) also mentions harshi afocha that regulated the
water supply for the farms as a third type. This type of afocha actually lost its importance as
Hence, the assertion made by Hecht (1980) that a man or woman may choose the
association (afocha) he or she wants to join is only half true as it is the Afochach that finally
determine who should be accepted or rejected based on toya and other factors. Furthermore, as
decisions, including matters related with membership applications, are made unanimously there
228
Whereas for Hecht (1980) afocha is only less than three generations old, Huurne (2004)
made it four generations old relying on Harari folklore and history. Nevertheless, the assistance
offered by the raven to Cane to bury his brother’s corpse following the unpleasant incident
shines lights on how human beings need the assistance of their fellow men at the time of sorrow
and happiness. This would lead to an agreement that people put themselves in one form of
groupings to cope with difficulties that they may not overcome individually. Hence, it could be
concluded that Harari afocha might have existed in a different form from time immemorial or
from at least the time Islam is introduced to Harar as the main obligations of afocha i.e. washing,
In Harar the number of registered Muslim afochach are about 71.114 While 10 are Harari
Ayach (women’s) afochach, 30 are Harari awach afochach. Harari afochach comprise more than
fifty percent of similar institutions such as Idir. It could, therefore, be said the number of afocha
is inversely proportional to the Harari population residing in Harar when compared to non-Harari
Muslim population: an indication of the relevancy of afocha in the social life of Hararis.
Nonetheless, according to kabir Abdullahi Adus there are about five awach afochach in Dire
Dawa.115
In malasay afocha meeting in Addis Ababa it was observed that members are from all
walks of life: university professors, traders, civil servants, jobless etc. old and young. It is,
therefore, plausible to note that the relations in afocha are non-discriminatory and they are
forums where Hararis train and recruit their leaders and transfer traditional values to the young
generation. This starts with the name given to the afocha such as malasay116 and Amir Nur
114
Unpublished leaflet from Harari People Regional State Justice and Security Affairs Bureau
115
Interview 4/9/2013 in Dire Dawa
116
Special regiment in Imam Ahmed’s army
229
afocha. Others take the name of awach such as aw Hashim, aw Abadir, aw Abdulqadir, etc.
Hence, afochach may bear the name of famous Harari warriors or awach.
Afocha members have individual and group responsibilities. They have a chairman,
deputy chairman, secretary, accountant and treasurer who are elected on a regular basis by
members. A store keeper, however, is a person who owns a large compound and volunteers to
keep all properties, such as tents, carpets, shovel, kittle, tea cups and water jugs. One individual
who announces the death and summons members to attend the interment is elected and assigned
as munabie (announcer). Basically, he is privileged not to accompany the corpse to the graveyard
Some afochach assign this task to a committee consisting of one leader and others who
assist him. All are provided with a mobile card worth Br. 15 to Br. 35 to call members to attend
the funeral ceremony. Probably, those announcers who are provided with cell phone cards may
not be exempted from attending the funeral ceremony as they do not go from place to place to
carry out their responsibility. It can be said, therefore, while some afochach supply cell phone
cards to their announcers others do not, either because their members could be reached easily as
they are within a walking distance, or they cannot afford. The members of those afochach that
supply the cards are, probably, spread over wide areas. This could probably make toya irrelevant
to form afocha.
Whatever method they apply, the announcers have a responsibility to report who attended
or is absent from the funeral. This does not necessarily mean a member does not attend the
funeral ceremony unless he received the message from the announcer. Members usually attend
the ceremony irrespective of how the message reached them as they are guided by one important
230
Afocha members as a group also share responsibilities. Some members dug or had the
grave dug while others read the Quran at the deceased’s home until the grave is made ready. For
instance, Ezair Abdulwasi, who is most likely 80, told the researcher that he is usually assigned
to read the Quran as he is knowledgeable in reading the Quran. His being too old to accompany
the corpse to the graveyard could be another reason for his exemption. Those who are relatively
There are individuals who take care of the corpse by washing, embalming and
straightening the appendages using different ointments. They massage the corpse to extract from
it all wastes and wrap it up with white sheet after washing it. It is then conveyed to the graveyard
either using a wooden leather bed which they constantly exchange from shoulder to shoulder or
hiring a vehicle from the municipality. All expenses and costs for a burial ceremony are covered
by the afocha. Members of the discipline committee see that all members carry out their
respective responsibilities.
Afocha members, therefore, have four main commitments towards the deceased: washing
the corpse, wrapping it up, praying what is called salatul janaza and burying it. These
commitments cannot be shunned as they are the pillars upon which the afocha is built. On the
other hand, sharing the sorrowfulness with the bereaved, supplying them with money essential to
cover some expenses, reading Tabarak and Yasin for three consecutive days after Mekhrib Salat,
and making duwaa to the deceased are members’ commitments to the bereaved. Hence,
following the interment they commiserate the bereft for three days. This ritual is called te’eziya.
dominant values, and someone with that knowledge belongs to the Harari elite. While the one
who is Quran illiterate stays outside the room where Quran is read arranging the pairs of shoes
231
left outside by all those who read the Quran until the burial place is prepared the one reading the
Quran sits on gidir nadaba. While the first one is the most approved, the latter one has low level
of approval. Nevertheless, whether he is Quran literate or illiterate he cannot be absent from the
burial ceremony, for this is deviant from the norms of the Afocha.
Praising the Prophet Muhammad and telling his life history accompanied with drumming
by followers of Sufism as an additional function the afocha is accomplished where either the
deceased is over 80 or he or she requested this in his or her will. The afocha sponsored this
performance for three consecutive days as the researcher observed the ceremony for his uncle’s
wife who was 103 years old and died on 18/12/13. She requested in her oral will the afocha to
accomplish that for her, following her death. One old man said this is to remind the mourner in
melodious way that death is like a mission of mercy as it somehow eases the distress or pain of
both the deceased and the mourner where the deceased is very old.
Second, the afocha is probably using the drumming as entertainment to lighten the
mourners’ grief. Another interesting observation on that amuta was preparation and serving of
darara117 to the mourners. One old lady explained that when afocha member dies on
Wednesday, unlike other interments, indochach afocha prepares and serves darara to mourners
after the burial. This service continues for three consecutive Wednesdays. Ethiopian orthodox
Christians practice this only when the mourners return from burial irrespective of the date of the
death.
Some additional social issues could be addressed by afocha. They resolve disputes
between husband and wife. According to malasay afocha regulation, the afocha donates 1000 Br
when a member is admitted to a hospital, provided he is not capable to cover medical expenses
and costs. From the additional cash contribution from each member the afocha addresses a
117
Grain boiled in water made especially for gatherings (Leslau, 1963:59)
232
request that is brought before it by a destitute member. Abdulqadir Shami118 recalled how his
afocha purchased a sewing machine and rehabilitated one member who ran bankrupt. The same
afocha members, to safeguard deceased children against dropouts, pay school fees. The afochach
and their members are finally satisfied with what they do, as they are led by very important
To discuss similar issues and make a monthly contribution every afocha holds an
ordinary meeting as per their regulation. Members who are not able to make contributions may
not be expelled from afocha. According to Ezair Abdulwasi Abdurrahman, either they pay half
of what others pay or totally exempted from making contribution.119 In some cases the
Two members from different afochach in Addis Ababa stated that they have been paying
for two or more individuals for a long time. Or according to Ezair Abdulwasi, to avoid
inconveniency to those who may volunteer to pay, his afocha does not accept such kind of
payment. Some afochach prefer suspensions of services to expulsion in order to force members
to settle their debts. Indeed, since no one knows when death knocks at his door, afocha members
Various penalties are applied where a member violates the traditions, customs or written
regulations of the afocha. According to malasay afocha regulation, for instance, if a member
fails to accompany the corpse to the graveyard without good reason he is fined 50 Br. When he is
absent from meeting he is fined 30 Br. No provision is provided on when and why a member
could be expelled from afocha except on suspension where he failed to pay a contribution for 6
118
The researcher’s friend
119
Interview on 21/11/2013
233
consecutive months without good cause. It seems values of tolerance dominate the relations
between the afocha and its members on the one hand, and among members on the other hand.
According to Ezair Abdulwasi, afocha is similar to a garment that covers one’s body. In
other words afocha for Hararis is as close as a garment is to a body. Like the garment, afocha
protects one from cold, heat, and gives you comfort and beauty. For Hararis, as afocha is their
identity, a man without afocha is a man without identity, or as noted by Davidson (1969) he is
after traditional Harari culture and language. Once they even tried to fix the amount of dowry a
groom has to pay to the bride. Besides, after the establishment of the regional government they
served as a link between the regional government and Harari people. Even the federal
government uses the pan-afocha committee formed from all afochach representatives to reach
Harari communities in Addis Ababa. Would these activities derail the afochach from their
objectives is the question that this paper is not entertaining as it goes beyond its scope.
One of the characters of afocha is the succession observed in membership. Most men join
their father’s afocha following their father’s death, provided they attained majority. Where the
father had not left behind any male heir or the male heir is a minor the widow, without paying an
entrance fee and further formality, joins her deceased husband’s afocha, till the minor acquires
majority. Abdulqadir Shami’s mother, for example, joined her husband’s afocha when her
husband died. Abdulqadir, though not yet married, took over when the afocha said now he had to
join his father’s afocha as he is major. Hence, the argument that afocha is arranged based on sex
is not absolute. Indeed it is true that the widows do not attend the meetings. Neither do they, as
234
any Moslem women, accompany the corpse to the graveyard. When they are destitute they may
Moreover, their sons may not be required to observe some formalities, such as writing
admission letters to apply for afocha membership. The heir son, following his father’s death, will
be simply told that he is now a member of his deceased father’s afocha. The heir certainly
accepts the invitation most of the time. The reasons to admit a former afocha member’s major
son as a member could be three: the afocha may need the services of the robust young man, and
second, the afocha assumes he is mentally ready to shoulder responsibilities once he attains
major. Here one important value, i.e. hard work is taught to the young generation. Third, by
continuing its service to the deceased family the afocha gives comfort to its living members and
would let the spirit of the deceased rest in peace. These actions of the afochach ensure one
important value, i.e. family security. Similarly, women may join their mother’s or sometimes
their mother-in-law’s afocha where they acquire majority and give birth after marriage.
Ayach Afocha
Ayach afocha functions a bit differently. Their involvement in the burial and wedding
ceremonies is wider and deeper than the awach afocha. When a member is informed of the death
she immediately walks in a hurry to amuta gar (the deceased’s home) with a small bundle of
firewood called kafara inchi to build a fire. The purpose of the kafara inchi is, no sooner than the
men take the corpse to the graveyard, to prepare “kafara, a kind of unleavened plain bread baked
in small circular shapes (about three inches in diameter) from a ready-made, often sweetened
235
Traditionally, as no match is put on firewood for three consecutive days in the deceased’s
home starting from the day he dies, ayach afocha members builds a fire outside amuta gar in one
of the neighbors’ compounds, as noted by Abdulla Abdurrahman (1953b) to prepare the kafara
and serve some to the female mourners, while another part is delivered to the graveyard to be
distributed among the paupers and beggars in that vicinity. Abay Fatima Ahmed Sharif120 limited
the number of kafara delivered to the graveyard to seven and five pieces where the deceased is a
male and female, respectively. These days the kafara is replaced by dates. That freed indochach
When the awach (fathers’) afocha return back from the burial ayach afocha members
would lead the lady mourner into gidir gar where they make duwaa that ends with the first
chapter of the Quran. This ritual is called Fatah that continues for three days. On the second day
they contribute qahwah mahaleq (tea money). The third day is the Quran day followed by ahli
According to Abay Fatima, afocha is both gafa (slave) and Amir. It is gafa because
members toil like slaves giving priority to afocha interest from theirs whenever and wherever
they are called for duty. There is folklore where a lady left alight the fire in her kitchen when she
was informed to present herself at the deceased’s home and when she returned to her home, she
found her home completely destroyed by the fire she left alight. On the other hand, no one, for
instance, sips from the tea prepared for afocha before the afocha blesses it with duwaa. Afocha
is, therefore, respected and feared like Amir. Then it is plausible to say that under such
circumstances the relation between the afocha and it members is governed by the value of
obedience.
120
Interview on 10/11/2013 in Harar
236
As gafa, afocha serves the guests with dinner for three days. Lunch is, as will be seen in
the next part, served by jamaa where the mourner has one. If she does not, this service is
provided by ahli. On the 30th day afocha members gather at the deceased’s home and make
duwaa for the deceased. It is called bun maqunet as serri and coffee is served to the members.
On the same day, awach afocha members read and complete the whole 30 chapters of the Quran,
Like awach afocha they have leaders elected democratically. They have the chair and co-
chairwomen, secretary, munabie and casher. Unlike awach afocha, ayach afocha has the afocha
raga (old lady of the afocha) besides the speaker, and the treasurer (Hecht, 1980). They also
The following narration on Afocha of Harari Diaspora is made by two Harari Diasporas,
Abdul-wadud Jami who has been living since 1987 in Toronto, Canada, and Hanim Muhammad
Abubaker who lived for 33 years in Dallas, USA. Now she is running her own four-star Hotel in
Dire Dawa. Abdul-wadud narrated about awach afocha in Toronto while Hanim narrated about
indochach afocha in Dallas. The first narration is about Toronto afocha and then the Dallas one.
Abdul-wadud Jami came to Ethiopia to visit his ahlach and marignach. He was among those
who took the initiative and found awach afocha121 in Toronto. The initial objectives of the
Toronto afocha were similar to those in Ethiopia, i.e. to help mourners in their internment and
share happiness with those who perform belachu. For instance, unlike Ethiopia where land for a
graveyard is free, land for a similar purpose in Toronto, and for that matter in any western
country, may be acquired only for high prices. To resolve this and similar problems, the first
121
1/12/2013 in Dire Dawa
237
Harari immigrants established afocha. Other than these, Toronto afocha performs a variety of
tasks.
From their experiences they learned the importance of afocha in providing information to
individual immigrants upon their arrival in Toronto. Hence, afocha welcomed the new arrivals
and provided them with necessary information, such as where to look and how to apply for jobs
and residence permits, how to join schools if one had that intention. The first immigrants, who
were assisted by the afocha to settle, have the responsibility to assist new arrivals. The Toronto
afocha and its members accomplished that mission driven by one important value, i.e. sense of
responsibility.
Hence, afocha of the Diaspora serves as a facilitator and liaison officer. Besides, it
organizes individual Harari volunteers who could teach different subjects to Diaspora Harari
children. If no Harari is available for a certain subject, it solicits a non-Harari tutor for that
purpose. It is also a forum where Harari traditions and customs are transferred to new
generations, especially to those who are born in Toronto. For that purpose, it organizes various
festivals and events where old and new generations could meet and exchange ideas and
New generations who arrived in Toronto when they were kids, or those who are born in
Toronto, have now started to lead the afocha. Applying IT (Information Technology) this
generation has improved and simplified the responsibilities of the afocha and the contacts among
the members on the one hand, and the municipality on the other hand. Led by the value of
perseverance, currently the Toronto Harari Diaspora afocha, equipped with all essential facilities
and equipment, has now transferred into Harari Community. It owns a community center where
238
festivals and events are held, including belachu or te’eziya when the host’s or mourner’s homes
Adjusting to a new circumstance they face and to achieve societal objectives, Hararis
create afocha wherever they go. As it has been discussed, afocha in Toronto is initially an
institution to help the Diaspora in wedding and burial. It is a liaison officer to help Hararis in
their communication with third parties, especially with schools and various administrative
offices. It is school to the new generation and custodian of Harari culture and traditions. It is,
Hanim, who lived in Dallas, USA for 33 years, told similar story. 122 Her afocha is ayach
afocha. Its name is Hayatach. It celebrated its 21st establishment year on May 16, 2014. Like
Harari ayach afochach in Ethiopia and Toronto, Dallas Hayatach afocha supports its members
when they perform belachu, and shares their sorrow with a member who lost her beloved one.
Employing the utensils of the afocha, members prepare food and serve the guests who
would come to celebrate the belachu or share the sorrow. This saves the host from leasing the
utensils for a higher price. In doing so, led by the value of thrift, they economize and avoid
wastage. Nevertheless, they prepare lavish parties on festivals and events such as Eid, Arafa, and
On the other hand, these occasions and events are opportunities for members and non-
members to come together, share information, know each other and make new friends. Hence,
the Diaspora children will use this opportunity to know each other and select their future spouse
besides knowing Harari customs and traditions. This makes Hayatach afocha in Dallas like any
Harari afocha a forum where Harari culture and traditions are preserved and transferred to the
122
Interview on 6/12/2013 in Dire Dawa
239
new generation. Nevertheless, besides those traditions and customs, the afocha is regulated by a
written regulation.
Accordingly, they vote for a chairwoman and deputy chairwomen, secretary, accountant,
and treasurer every year. The ordinary meeting takes place every month. To have a separate bank
account where it keeps its money, the afocha has registered with the municipality and acquired
legal personality. They contribute one hundred USD per year. If a member failed to bring food at
the get together she is fined a similar amount, and if she is late for a meeting for half an hour she
is fined 5 USD. If a member is not taking part in the activities of the afocha for one consecutive
The afocha utilize the money collected as fines to buy what is considered necessary for
festivals. They also help needy people residing in Harar with that money. For instance, during
Ramadan they always send money to 10 poor families. They also contribute money to alleviate
some social and economic problems that are prevailing in Harar. They cooperate with other
According to Ayub Abdullahi Faqi and Abdullahi Ali Sharif (2007) the first jamaa was
men’s jamaa that was grown from mugaad. Baha is defined by Hecht (1980) as women’s
voluntary rotating credit association formed by young wives. Huurne (2004) also defined it as a
system for saving and for receiving money at the time of need. Hence, for Hecht (1980) and
Hecht (1980) asserted that baha is formed by women of the same age who share a similar
worry. She further stated that baha as an association was promoted by those women who
opposed the subjugation to strict and traditional rules of the afocha dominated by old women.
240
She also confirmed that some of the functions of afocha are taken over by the baha.
Nevertheless, from the interview with Harari indochach and observation, two things are learned:
it is not the baha, rather it is the jamaa that has taken over some of the functions of afocha. And
in the future probably it may replace afocha totally. And second, Baha and jamaa are not similar.
Though for both Hecht (1980) and Huurne (2004) the main objective of baha is to let
members save money and allow them to collect the same at the time of need, Huurne (2004)
unlike Hecht (2004) noted that baha is also a forum where members exchange information. As it
can be seen, though baha may exist within jamaa, the two are basically different as they address
different social issues. Moreover, unlike recent times, in the old times baha was a voluntary
According to kabir Abdulmuheiman123 traditionally the first baha appeared in the history
of Harar when Aw Abadir brought different ethnic groups together and organized the
administration of Harar. Then after, Hararis continued to organize themselves in baha to resolve
Hence, they participated in building the Jugal under the political leadership of Amir Nur.
Each Harari organized in baha and built each section of the Jugal at his vicinity or Bari. The
baha was used to build the Juma Masjid (grand mosque) in Harar. Similarly, the Hararis built
Gey Madrassa each one contributing money, labor, time, ideas or knowledge, or property in
kind. That was possible after Hararis organized in baha. Aada Gar came into existence by
artifacts contributed from Hararis who were organized through baha, according to kabir
Abdulmuheiman. Recently, money was contributed through baha and a Trade Center Complex is
built at Asmadin Bari to generate income that would be utilized to run Sheik Abubaker
Madrasah.
123
Interview on 12/01/2013 in Harar
241
Hence, baha is not simply an association organized to collect money from its members
and allow them to retake it when they are in need. Rather, it is a voluntary association where
members contribute not only money but labor, time, knowledge, consultation, property in kind,
etc. to accomplish mega projects that would benefit the society. Accordingly, when Hararis built
Jugal, Juma Masjid, Gey Madrassa and other mosques in Harar, even the wall surrounding the
Muslim graveyard at Aw Abdal, each Harari organized in baha made contributions in money,
property, time, and labor. Thus, baha was an association established by Hararis to build big
Kabir Abdulmuheiman, to underlie his statement, he cited a duwaa that runs as follows:
“madanabe aymashana bahabe ayuchana!” It means, “let God not make us lose citizenship nor
purge us from baha!” Madana is citizenship. Hence, this duwaa, to express how baha is
important for Hararis, equates purging from baha to losing citizenship. Through time, however,
the importance of baha diminished and its scope and the purpose for which the baha was
established for has been changed. Thus, it can be understood baha is not only different from
jamaa, but the old baha is indeed different from the contemporary one, especially from the
societal problems they were addressing. The baha was guided by enhancement of the welfare of
The following is a summary from two jamaa meetings attended by the researcher. The
first one was Amir Nur jamaa gathering held on May 24, 2013, in Harar. It is toya jamaa and
only three years old. That meeting was first addressed to come to order by Abay Sami-ya Umar,
probably the eldest lady among the members. Then she made duwaa while distributing a token
amount of chat to the members. Before resuming the formal meeting in which Br. 15 is collected
from each member and attendance taken, they exchanged information. Unless it is a good
242
remark, from what we said on ahli, they did not gossip about any individual or group who is the
ahli of any member. Then the meeting came to an end with duwaa.
If a member is absent without good cause or fails to inform her absence ahead or on the
meeting day the absentee would be penalized. The penalty could be admonishing and in case of a
recidivist member a fine up to Br. 50 could be imposed. The final penalty is expulsion from
membership. Such type of individual may apply to other jamaa that would try to find out the
reason why she left her previous jamaa. There is a possibility of being rejected by other jamaach
in Harar that are 18124 in number if they found out the expulsion is acceptable.
The majority of members of this toya jamaa are also members of Ti-saay jamaa, the
oldest jamaa established in Harar by 11 gey indochach by merging two toya jamaach (plural
form of jamaa) in 1978 GC. According to Abay Muluka Abdul Hamid125 who is the secretary,
Ti-saay jamaa members are currently 55 in number. It has acquired legal personality registering
with Harari People Regional State Justice and Security Affairs Bureau. It has regulations which
are always read to a new applicant, who pays the total sum that has been contributed by the
jamaa members.
The members vote for chairwoman, deputy chairwoman, secretary, auditor, treasurer and
store-keeper every two years. Jamaa members are active in the wedding and burial ceremonies.
In old days ayach afocha members used to provide breakfast and dinner for three consecutive
days to the guests who presented themselves at the deceased’s house. These days, however, they
serve only dinner. Mourners and guests, therefore, have to skip lunch or manage this on their
own. To resolve this, jamaach started to prepare and serve lunch. For breakfast they serve bread
with tea. From 3:00pm to 5:00pm for three consecutive days, members read Quran and each
124
This figure is obtained from the interview gisti (lady) Nejaha Umar had with Harari TV and transmitted on
12/02/2013.
125
Interview on 30/11/2013 in Harar
243
morning they make Zikri and make duwaa for the deceased at his or her home. On the third day
On the wedding ceremony the jamaa helps in preparing and serving food using its own
utensils. If the host employs individual laborers who do manual work, such as chopping onions,
the jamaa covers the payment for the laborers. Members engage in anqar mehtab and Zagan
karabu. When a member falls sick they visit the sick individual in group to make duwaa and
contribution provided the sick one cannot afford to cover her medical expenses. They also help
From the activities the jamaa is accomplishing, it is plausible to conclude that it has taken
over some of the functions of afocha. What is remarkable about the Ti-saay jamaa is the sacred
tasks the jamaa is planning to accomplish according to Abay Muluka. They have a plan to
acquire land and build a complex where they could start business to generate income, bring up
orphans, and help poor women who have the intention but could not start business due to lack of
capital. Ti-saay jamaa is helping not only its members, but also those who are not members but
needy people, especially women. Hence, this makes it the protector of the welfare of all destitute
individuals guided by values of broad mindedness, social justice and equality (Schwartz, 1994).
Muna further informs that there are two types of contributions: contribution as jamaa
member and contribution made as baha member. The first one is Br. 200 and is made at the
beginning of every year. It is a membership contribution and its purpose is to assist members
mainly with wedding and funerals. They also use it to help needy members and non-members.
Or they may, led by values of creativity and curiosity, do business with it. For instance, they
invested Br. 10,000 Bond on the Renaissance Dam that has been built on the Nile River.
244
The latter type of contribution is Br. 1000 per 15 days. This contribution is made by baha
members who are also jamaa members and who can afford to do so. It is an association within an
association. Though only Ti-saay jamaa members can join the baha, members who cannot afford
may not be forced to join the baha. Hence, while only jamaa members are eligible to baha
membership, jamaa members are not obliged to join the baha within the jamaa. On the other
hand, Ti-saay jamaa members are free to join other afochach of their own choice.
The first type of contribution could be made at one go or on two, three or four terms.
There is even a possibility to exempt a member from paying where it is proven she could not
come up with the money. In case of the baha, however, exemption is unthinkable. Two or more
members, however, can contribute, say, Br. 500 or 200 each and join the baha and distribute the
The researcher attended the leqot jamaa meeting on Nov. 10, 2013, in Harar. Like Amir
Nur jamaa they first greeted each other and when the meeting came to order, the chairwoman
stipulated the agendas of the day. First they requested explanation from a member who was
absent from the last two meetings. The absentee explained she was absent as she was on a
journey. Moreover, she informed the jamaa someone from her neighborhood was dead. They
accepted her reason but admonished her for her failure to inform her reason for her absence
They also exchanged ideas on the utensil they would like to purchase. After long
deliberation they agreed to purchase a big metal cauldron. Accepting a new member who paid
Br. 500 as arrears plus Br. 10 for current contribution they concluded their meeting, agreeing to
read Yasin and Tabarak chapters from the Quran on their ordinary gathering they hold every 15
245
days. From the contribution the new member paid, it is plausible to assume the jamaa is two and
246
CHAPTER EIGHT: CONCLUSIONS AND FINDINGS
Conclusions
Harar was once an independent emirate or city-state. Medieval Harar, which once
stretched the African coast and trade-routes, however, was different from other Sultanates. Harar
had its shrine, which formed a center of pilgrimage; a place of riches and security that easily
became a splendid legend among the surrounding people. Even in 1935, after a generation of
Abyssinian misrule and Indian and Levantine immigration, it retained something of the gracious
Except the replacement of wooden outer door gates with iron sheet, the covering of the
narrow passages with cobblestones, and the introduction of pipe line water in each house hold,
the heart of the city is unchanged, with its steep little alleys twisting between secretive
courtyards and currently sturdy sheds. Previously, following the three occupations, some changes
were introduced as well: two new gates; the scattering of ornate, Indian influenced villas; the
Ras’s palace; the Christian church erected by king Menelik; the sprawl of extramural tin-roof
suburbs; the renovation of the Asma Adin Bari and Badro Bari by the Turkish and Italians,
respectively.
Furthermore, during Egyptian rule a new mosque was built at fares Magala (horse
market), a venue where currently the Chelenque monument is built. Even though at the end of
the 19th century Indian merchants built new houses whose wooden verandas defined a different
urban landscape and influenced the construction of gey garach, their architectural and
247
ornamental qualities are now part of the Harari cultural heritage. The Italians also, during their
five year occupation, on top of renovating one of the gates of the Jugal, they introduced a new
modern suburb called Butega on the outskirts of the wall by constructing new buildings to live in
and run their administration. That was done at the expense of Harari fruit gardens. They also
built butcher houses at the grand market known as gidir Magala. They introduced Italian
Language-wise though, Hararis have their own language that belongs to the Semitic
family it contains, as noted by Nicholl (1997), a strong mix of Oromo and Somali languages both
in vocabulary and structure. Burton (1894) once said this language is only bound within the wall
spoken only by 8,000 souls. These days, however, it is spoken in Addis Ababa and Dire Dawa at
the domestic level and in Chicago, California, Dallas, Australia and Toronto at the international
level. There is a possibility for Harari values to contain some values from the Far East, North
Even though Harari values lie deep within the Harari’s consciousness, have their own
distinct features emanated from Jugal, awach, gey gar, marign, gel, jamaa, afocha, Quran gey,
ashir gar, family relations, etc., which are the sources for Harari identity, trade contacts with
central Ethiopia and to the coast, the presence of foreign merchants in Harar around the turn of
the century, and the occupation of Harar by different forces have left their marks on Harari
values. Thus, as Harari identity, Harari values lubricate and smooth the social relations and bring
social harmony. Hararis are the gauge of their values. Then, for Hararis to disregard these values
could mean to overlook their identity, which may result in identity crises and social instability.
248
One of the institutions where Hararis develop and either teach or learn their values is the
family that includes aw wa I, ezair wa kaka, anna wa ekhesta, umma wa baabaa and waldach.
These and other ahlach teach Harari values to children and monitor their observation or
violation. The values that teach children how to function in this world are mainly based on
Harari spiritual, religious and traditional beliefs. By definition, Harari family is not a nuclear
family; rather it is an extended family. It is a basic social unit that consists of persons closely
related by blood.
A mother, assisted by her sisters if she has one or by her elder daughter who is capable of
taking care of her younger brothers or sisters while her mother is preparing food or attending her
husband, brings up the children. Once a week all grandchildren spend their weekends at their
grandmothers’ or aunts’ or uncles’ home playing with their cousins. Where they live either in
Addis Ababa or Dire Dawa they spend much of their school vacation in Harar with their
ascendants or collaterals. The Diasporas invite their mothers to live with them and teach their
grandchildren Harari values. On the contrary, children take care of their aged parents, including
grandparents. There is no especial home for retired people. This is how Hararis transfer their
Harari mothers and dads go out to work to provide breads for the family. Back then
mothers work only half a day selling what they collected from their farm. Following the
establishment of Harari Regional State, however, mothers who are employed at offices work the
whole day. When they return home they care for the children. They would make the children do
their homework before they could go outside to play with their friends if there are no computers
249
Most of the time family members eat food that is served on one plate believing that food
eaten in such a manner has Baraka. Even if they use separate plates they always eat together.
This is the time and place where family members exchange information, share their thoughts,
perspectives, lives, and children learn Harari table manners. At weddings and other festivities the
youths help the guests and elders to wash their hands and then serve them with food and drinks
made from contributions made by each ahli or afocha or jamaa members. When they finish
serving they eat together with their peers. From this they learn sharing responsibilities,
In Harari life there are always family members or friends to talk with. It is very unlikely
to find one Harari who would say ‘leave me alone! I want to be left alone!’ While chewing chat
they watch TV together; the youth share information on their email downloaded either from their
cell phone or computer where this is available. Thus these back grounds, culture and manner of
Outside the family, Hararis are interconnected through marign, gel, ahli, afocha and
jamaa. These institutions are the custodians of Harari values. They teach and monitor the
observation of the values implementing various mechanisms. As pointed out by Cohen (1931)
and Waldron (1978) gossip is one method that is used by these institutions to see that individuals
confirm to the social values of Harari society. Hence, for Hararis to live without these
This does not mean Harari family has not been confronted with challenges. In old days,
the roles of the parents were simple; while the father is the head of the household keeping order
and setting discipline when needed, the mother provides stability and comfort to her family. This
is now facing challenges as mothers are leaving children behind with house maids. In some cases
250
the traditional 40-or 50-year marriage has been reduced to 4 or 5 years. Divorce has become
more frequent in Harari society while the number of marriages has increased. While some of
traditional family values have become less important, new ones are emerging. Hence, as the
family is fundamental for personality formation, Hararis have to design new mechanisms to
resolve the problem that has come along with modernization. One way to deal with this is to
Harar has been portrayed by most scholars as trade and Islamic learning center. Even
though one does not disagree with this idea, it would be said this would narrow the
understanding of Harar and Hararis. Hararis have lives that may not be isolated and understood
from their walled city and its vicinities. They may not be understood isolated from their toyach,
gara abaat and gar that consists of different parts in which they are brought up, and finally their
sprit and body is freed from contamination when death takes them. Hararis may not be
understood isolated from their neighbors with whom they share the awach, the trade, the beliefs
and the sweet and sour part of life. Harari values are, therefore, principles, ideas, or standards
accumulated from Harari experience of deep social relations with other people over the ages.
When one studies Hararis, therefore, one has to look into their religious myths, some
symbolic acts reflected through values to make the study comprehensive. This work has
discussed some of the values it believes to be central in the lives of Hararis. Values that regulate
family relations from birth to death, values governing Harari educational institutions, and those
values that regulate social, trade and institutions are discussed as important ones in defining and
understanding Hararis.
251
One of the relevant tasks of education is to enable society to produce good men who act
nobly. Though one may debate on what type of education is good education, at least no one
disagrees with schooling, surrounded with examples of rudeness and vices are not good
schooling. To produce good men the education itself, therefore, has to be free from vices and
Even though further research is required to say the aim of the Harari education system
has been to produce people who would act rightly and fight for justices, there were indications
that efforts were made by the Kabirach to shape the students to be good and act rightly. They did
that through teaching and by doing. This can be assumed from the simple life the Kabirach were
leading. Normally, gey garach are decorative, while the house of a kabir is not. Their food is,
most of the time, 1/4th of the ukhat collected from each student. They did not discriminate among
their students but on character and merit. They always wished prosperity and development to the
community that was expressed through the duwaa they performed in various occasions.
The characteristic of the Quran gey teaching had also contributed to that end. As it is
pointed out by Woube Kassaye, (2014) some of those characteristics were functionalism as
Hararis view the Quran Gey part of the bigger society that is made up of interrelated parts, all
interacting on the basis of a common value system. The second characteristic, is an immediate
induction into society and a preparation for adulthood through: participating in military training
and constructing small houses; learning by doing, i.e. emphasizing participatory education; a
continuous assessment by the family and the kabir; being non-rigidly compartmentalized
whereby senior students are allowed to teach junior ones and flexible enough to accommodate
252
Another discourse could be on who should provide education. Some argue to educate a
child is an obligation that rests upon parents. For instance, as noted by Mill (West, 1965, p. 10)
the proper education of children is the most sacred duty of the parents. He goes on further,
describing a moral crime if one only provides food for its body but fails to provide instruction
and training for its mind. Not performing that, however, is not only failing against the offspring
but against the society. Hararis have made education accessible not only to their children but to
In that process, educational values could be created or come to existence in various ways.
They could be created in the process of building the educational system or they could be
included in the curriculum of a given school and taught in classes. In some schools ran by Harari
communities, on top of those values taught as part of courses an additional separate course,
referred to as a behavioral course, is offered to teach students various values. Some of them are
God fearing, social responsibilities, which include respect and care for parents, to relatives,
neighbors and others, for instance, those who are in need such as travelers.
Values, which are probably common to all human beings, such as kindness, generosity,
mercy, sympathy, peace, disinterested good will, fairness and truthfulness towards all creatures
including animals in all situations, regulate various relations including but not limited to relations
between family members (both limited and extended), relations between an individual and the
community on the one hand and relations among community members and nature. As these are
some of the values all Harari educational institutions are sharing, it seems they are universal. On
the other hand, each may have values which it promotes depending on different economic,
253
Some of Hararis’ educational values, such as provision of equal educational access to
women and helping them to cope with difficulties they faced through special programs designed,
are worth acknowledgment when analyzed in respect of the time those measures were
undertaken. Then one could say Hararis command a great deal of honor in this respect. By
appointing women to higher posts-once they acquired the necessary education-that enable them
to serve their community Hararis accomplished such a novel task in the 19 th century that some
Furthermore, Hararis do not adopt segregation principle while students are attending
classes or at their free time in the school compound. All pursue their courses in one classroom
taught either by a female or male teacher. Neither are faculties expected to be separate while in
school or on their leisure time in the school compound. Both are, however, expected to observe
Islamic way of dressing. It suffices for female staff to put a scarf on her head to cover her hair.
Nevertheless, she is not necessarily expected to put on Hijab. Thus, Hararis regulated the
relations the community members had with its female members in a wise manner by advancing
Similarly, Hararis had regulated the relations they have with their surrounding
community by promoting novel values through its educational system. Some of these values are
altruism, equity, diversity and social justice. Thus, in order to ensure their perpetuity and peace,
Hararis have to make education accessible by extending education beyond its border and reach
out to others as they believe good education produces good people. This was like bringing the
horse to the well. There were cases where children from the surrounding people came to Harar to
study. Hence, students who came from various backgrounds contributed to foster Harari values
while some of them absorbed Harari values and became Hararis for good.
254
The discourse on who should exercise final authority-the family, state or community-
over education is going on. Locke (1953) for instance, concludes “that parents have the right and
duty to ‘govern’ their children’s education” (First Treatise of Government, sec. 63). Hararis,
however, involved each stakeholder, the students, the kabir, the family, the ulama and the Amir
The follow-up and the evaluation mothers were undertaking is worth mentioning in the
daily lesson of their children. Each day when the student returns from school the mother,
probably who could be Quran illiterate, would ask her child to revise the verse of the Quran she
or he studied at school. If she senses something is wrong in her child’s recitation of the verse she
would refer the matter to her husband who would identify the real problem and send a message
to the teacher. Thus, the teacher would continue to teach and keep his privileged position, as long
as his performance is approved as satisfactory by the community. This relationship reflects the
interdependence the teacher and the community are having based on values of cooperation and
accountability.
Hence, values in Hararis educational system have been mainly regulating two measure
relations, external and internal relations. Some values have been regulating those external
relations Hararis have had with surrounding people and international community, which resulted
in smoothing that relation. Hence, what can be understood from Harari educational system is that
Islamic education in general, and Harari education in particular, are not fostering anti-West
sentiment among the young generation. Rather, the West and the Islamic world have common
values which are essential to peace and prosperity. The remaining values have been regulating
relations among Hararis on the one hand, and relations between individuals and the community
255
Besides Islamic education, Harar was known for its trade that was used by Hararis as a
means to achieve and sustain peace. Historically, as it has been seen, villages or small cities like
Harar were overrun by the pastoralist Oromos, which resulted in the complete disappearance of
those villages or little cities with their people who were either completely annihilated or adopted
by the Oromos (Caulk, 1977). The Hararis, however, realizing negotiation with the Oromos
would save their city from destruction, convinced the Oromos preserving the city would serve
Thus, by the beginning of the 19th century, the relations between Harar and the settled
Oromos had developed into mutual economic interdependence. This economic interdependence
and political necessity brought a closer alliance between the city's administration and the settled
Oromos. Such alliances reflected an economic as well as political necessity (Muhammad Hassan
1973).
Also, in order to carry on trade to the port at Zeila, Hararis maintained alliances with
Somali-caravan protectors under the unifying force of Islam. Records from the Emirs’
households from the 17th century demonstrated numerous alliances with Oromo and other non-
Hararis, principally through kinship, including intermarriage, adoptive brotherhood and Islam
brotherhood. Thus, the basic patterns of interdependence were foundational to the city’s
Aside from having peaceful relations with the surrounding people, Hararis, led by values
of power, controlled some trade items to safeguard their interests. One of those items was salt. It
was controlled by the Hararis as a key to the survival of the city (Waldron, 1984). Waldron
further noted that controlling the salt market put Hararis in an advantageous position, for as
256
Bloch notes (Waldron, 1984) “he who controlled salt controlled the people.” (p. 3). This was also
another mechanism Hararis used to preserve their city, trade and trade routes.
Oromos, Somalis, Harari, Argoba, Shawa, and ferengis could converge on the Harar market to
exchange their diverse trade goods. While the market served as a point of cultural contact, the
diversity of trade goods also shows clearly the extent of commercial relations among many
ethnic and class groups (Harris, 1844). This also rejects the allegation that Harar was an isolated,
forbidden city.
Waldron (1984), however, asserts those relations were not always entirely in favor of the
Hararis. For instance, Amir Muhammad Ali’s adoption by the Oromo chiefs by the elm gosa
ceremony exposed Harar to the regular provision of hospitality to visiting Oromos, (Muhammad
Hassen, 1973; Caulk, 1977). The Amir had to pay regular tribute to the Oromo chiefs, including:
10% tithes from the Hararis farms; and taxes collected on goods of merchants as they entered
and left the city, income drawn from his own farm and maybe on export of ivory and other items.
Since these incomes did not satisfy the lust of the Oromo chiefs, the amir imposed a special
hospitality tax referred to as Mahalaq Oromo on the citizens. He further exacerbated the
economic situation by debasing the existing coin by replacing the silver with copper (Waldron,
One may not disagree with Waldron’s (1984) assertion that the relation was unbalanced
and unfair. It was a cost paid by the Hararis to protect the city from complete destruction in
similar fashion to others who suffered from Oromo pastoralists’ expansion. The Hararis did not,
however, allow that unfair and unbalanced relation to continue, for, sooner, or later, it would
have slowly ruined their city too, simply prolonging its agony. Thus, they invited the Egyptian
257
forces to occupy Harar and did away with the Harari Amir and Oromo alliance (Abbas Ahmed,
promoted by the Hararis, where necessary, to protect their city and enhance peace which is
essential to economic development. Thus, the value of respect, mutual benefit and cooperation
governed the relations between the Hararis and the Oromos. The sustenance of these values
depended greatly on the principles of righteousness, honesty, sincerity, diligence, trust, non-
discrimination and fairness in the relations among traders. Legal rules among which the sanctity
of property rights and of contract were paramount functioned to protect these values.
Whenever these values are eroded people will resort to other means to restore them. That
seems the reason why Hararis either invited the Egyptian force to occupy Harar or at least gave
no resistance to that force. Again, when the Egyptian administration started to violate those
values, the Hararis started silent resistance against that rule. As E. S. Pankhurst (1958) noted,
when the British forced the Egyptians to leave Harar they (Hararis) were dancing, rejoicing that
The trade values and ethics govern not only relations between Hararis and other third
parties; they regulated relations among Harari merchants. One of the values was trust each
merchant has towards each other. Instances discussed by Stitz (1975) brings to light how Harari
merchants entrusted their town property to a friend or a Qadi who received and carefully
administered it for the benefit of the merchants and their families when leaving for Ifat or to the
coast for trade. The question we could raise is why people were performing their duties
258
Concerning the first question it could be said, besides the teaching of Islam, as pointed
out by Fourcade and Healy (2007), the market nourishes personal virtues of honesty and
cooperation. The same authors argue, as illustrated by A. Smith (1978) that the introduction of
commerce into any country is always accompanied by honesty and punctuality. Thus, of all the
nations of Europe, the Dutch (the most commercial) are the most faithful to their word.
According to this approach, the market creates people with honesty and integrity, and faithful to
their words. As it has been discussed Harari merchants were such type of people in the 18 th
century.
Whether things have changed or not, further study is necessary. It is plausible, however,
to say the following. The market could undermine social relations, corrupt political life and eat
away character. This approach is what Fourcade and Healy (2007) have called the commodity
nightmare. This could make people lack honesty, dignity and moral value.
This could be the prevailing phenomenon this day in Ethiopia as one can infer from the
maneuvers the government is making to fight corruption scandals revealed in the Ethiopian
Authority. The Federal Ethics and Anti-Corruption Commission has sued several merchants;
including Harari merchants related with this scandal. The question is, would the government stop
it or, as pointed out by Fourcade and Healy (2007) will each individuals hunger for the profit will
be kept in check by a similar drive among other individuals? Or would the market be feeble
compared to the culture and society to curb the individual hunger for the undue profit?
Hence, in the 18th century markets were civilizing and they created honest and prudent
Harari merchants who lived up to their promise and adhered to civility and cooperation. These
days, probably, either the markets are destructive and are creating businessmen with corrupted
259
values and that hinder progress, or the markets are feeble so that their effects on society are
minimal. If the Harari merchants in particular, and the Ethiopian merchants in general, work
towards what is called by the economists the doux commerce, they would curb the hunger for the
unjustified profit. Otherwise, businessmen with corrupted values will prevail and development
will be halted.
Other than the relations the Hararis had established with the Oromos to keep their city
and the trade routes safe, it could be argued those relations the Hararis always had with the
international market and becoming the pioneer in the technology transfer and economic
development helped them to perpetuate as a community. As it has been discussed, after Harar
was reduced from the capital city of militant to mercantile city state, Hararis utilized Islam,
marriage and trade to maintain their city and the trade routes.
As mentioned by Cerulli (1931), to free the trade routes, the first trade-related treaty was
made between Usman Al-Habash, the successor of Amir Nur, where-in the Oromos were given
preferential treatments. And yet the Hararis held the two essential goods, i.e. salt and cloth in
monopoly. As described by Waldron (1984) cloth, as a replacement for leather wraps, is still a
highly desired commodity and a mainstay of the Harari long-distance trade (Stitz, 1975) that was
initially, in the Harari-Oromo trade, almost certainly a sumptuary item, not a necessity. Hence,
they made all those concessions to open trade routes to the sea that would keep them informed
As mentioned by Waldron (1984) Hararis, who had the specialized mercantile knowledge
and organization to bring the salt from the coastal sources, having control over it, made it the key
to the city's survival. As it was extracted from the coastal evaporating pans, particularly at Zeila
it could be said, the Hararis used that as a means of maintaining the contact they had with the
260
international community. They used the proceeds from the cloth and the salt to purchase
merchandise to export; another mechanism they implemented to maintain that contact crucial to
Some scholars attributed the link Harar had with the global commerce and transport that
had rapidly developed in the Red Sea and the Indian Ocean to the Egyptian occupation. Though
this is not a settled argument, no one doubts Hararis had learned how to do business from the
Europeans, (mainly Greek, French, and Italian traders) who came along with the occupying
force. As it has been already mentioned by Ezair Abdullahi Hassan Sheriff, those Europeans
Hararis, importing sewing machine, started to produce ready-made garments using raw
clothes they purchased from the European importers, and then exported to the highland of
Ethiopia. They were the first to introduce that machine and bring corresponding technology
into the Ethiopian Empire some of them moved to Addis Ababa and made clothes for the
Imperial Palace. Klemm127 (2002) attributes the importation of a special sewing machine to stitch
the first atlas, special cloth put on by the gey indochach on belachu by a Yemini tailor who came
to Harar in 1870. It is plausible to infer that the one which was imported by the Yemini tailor
was a special one, whereas those imported by the Hararis were ordinary types.
The introduction of the railroad from Djibouti to Addis Ababa resulted in the shifting of
the trade center to Dire Dawa and Addis Ababa. The Hararis took that as a blessing in disguise
and moved to those centers and engaged in the export/import business and maintained the
commercial connection they have had with the international community. These days most Harari
126
Interview 3/6/2013 in Addis Ababa
127
From an interview she had with N.A. on April 5th 2000
261
traders are engaging in importing building materials and electronics to maintain that connection.
While keeping their relations with the international community, they were also building
their social institutions wherever they went and settled. When they started living in Addis Ababa
they organized their afocha and established the first Sharia court headed by kabir Ali Affaan
who came from Harar. They established Umar Smatter Madrasah the first Islamic school in
Addis Ababa. From all those acts we can say that Hararis have been guided by values of
creativity, inquisitiveness and freedom; daring, varied life, and exciting life; successful and
capable. If they maintain these values and continue to apply them, considering the changing
situations, Hararis will survive the odds they may come across in the future. And anybody who
would like to understand how Hararis believe, think, dream, act and react should know what
Findings
1. As values are the subject studied by all social sciences, this concept is used as a tool to
understand family, trade, social and educational life of Hararis. Thus, understanding of
this concept is important to understand generally different aspects (legal, economic,
cultural, and political, etc.) of any society.
2. For various reasons (capacity for instance) state rules alone would not be sufficient to
regulate all social relations in a given society. Then that gap is filled by values. The
Quran gey is regulated not by the state laws. Neither it ruled by Shera. Rather through
values developed in the Quran gey. Furthermore, the Betrothal once in Ethiopia, was
regulated with the family laws. These days it is left to be regulated by the values of the
society.
3. Moreover, society needs some spaces to regulate itself with standards, beliefs and
principles which it creates, develops and implements throughout its history using its
various institutions. One of those principles, standards and beliefs are values. For
instance, the presence of trust, which is very important value for economic development,
among traders is mainly regulated by the merchants themselves.
4. Values and state legal rules have their similarities and differences.
262
1. Categorizing acts or behaviors as right or wrong, both regulate social relations.
Hence, both are instruments to regulate social relations. Hararis use both values and
state legal norms to regulate behaviors. For instance, it was the Qadi, as the
representative of the Amir, who would issue title deed for immovable property. The
same property, to be administered, would be trusted to a Qadi or a friend by a
merchant who would leave for inland or sea port to do business.
2. Both legal norms and values mold individuals and society using similar or different
social institutions.
3. Values and legal norms are put in hierarchical order by a society to inform the
members which values or legal norms are very important to the society. In both cases,
therefore, the higher the hierarchy the values or the legal rules one violates, the severe
the punishment is.
4. Legal norms under certain circumstances recognize and provide protection to some
values, such as family, religious and traditional values. For example, recognition of
traditional marriage.
5. Values have positive quality on the individual who promotes it. For instance,
merchants would feel good about their integrity and being honest if they are so while
doing business. This is also true for legal norms. For instance, when one promotes
human rights provisions, as Hararis promoted equality of women when they allowed
and even supported women to learn.
6. Though basically legal norms apply sanction for their observation by the society, both
values and legal norms, to regulate societal relations, apply sanctions and awards. For
instance once Usman Al-Habash used preferential taxes in order to smooth the
relations between Hararis and the Oromos.
7. Values have public and private aspects. Public values are observed to avoid social
sanction, while private/individual values are observed to avoid shame in one’s own
private feelings. The social sanction, as applied by the state as collective
representative of the society, is true for the legal norms.
8. Values promotes economic growth. For example, where there is trust, economic
growth is fast, for the cost of making a contract is low. Hand shake suffice to
conclude contracts, while drawing sophisticated legal instruments, which requires
longer time and costly, may hamper economic growth.
263
9. Values are chosen freely, while individuals do not have choices or alternatives except
obeying the legal norms to avoid sanctions. For example, in democratic political life,
one will not be sanctioned for one is right or left oriented political thinker.
10. In case of values, you stand by your values and even try to convince others to adopt
those values. For instance, you try to convince others not to cheat. In case of legal
norms, this is done, most of the time by the state institutions. Hence, the instruments
applied here differ.
11. When values exist at individual level, for its implementation you may not need the
collective action of the society.
12. Legal norms, generally regulates the relation we may have with each other and the
state, while values regulate internal feelings of an individual, (example competent
values).
13. Application of values may vary from individual to individual, from family to family,
from community to community, etc. basically legal norms, however, surpass these.
14. Values are acquired both formally and informally, while legal norms are, generally,
acquired formally.
15. The custodian institutions of values are mainly families, religious institutions, schools
and other social institutions. While in case of legal norms, the state institutions are the
main actors.
16. Values are not, in general written. Most of the time they are transferred, from
generation to generation, orally. Basically, the legal norms are written.
17. Some times to enforce values we may use our own instruments without seeking help
from the legal norms. For instance, if a merchant from Shawa repeatedly breaks
contractual promises, as this affects not only the promise breaker, but the Shawan
merchants, the Shawan merchants themselves take measures, such as reprimand,
isolation or restriction, even withdrawal from doing business with the promise
breaker.
264
REFERENCES
Abbas Ahmed. (1992). A historical study of the city-state of harar (1795-1875). Master thesis,
Addis Ababa University, History Department. Addis Ababa: Ethiopia.
Abdel-Hady Z. M. (2010). The masjid, yesterday and today. Qatar: The Center for International
and Regional Studies, Georgetown University, School of Foreign Service.
Abd-El-Khalick, F., Boyle, H., & Pier, D. (2006). Educational quality in Islamic schools, Report
No. 1: Nigeria, USAID.
Abdi-Khalil. (2007), Harar jugal: Historical quality of treasure. Dire Dawa Administration,
Ethiopia. Dire Printing Press.
Abdulla Abdurrahman. (1953a). Harari funeral custom, Part I. Ethnology Society Bulletin, 1 (1),
16-18.
Abdulla Abdurrahman. (1953b). Harari funeral custom, Part II. Ethnology Society Bulletin, I (2),
21-24.
Abdul-Karim Ahmed Yusuf. (1995). Wareg Zeman. Harari translation of Arab Faqih Fethu Al-
Habash. Addis Ababa: Negd Printing Press.
Abdullahi Ali-Sherriff. (2007). African study monographs, No. 41. The Center for African Area
Studies Kyoto University. Japan.
Abdullahi Mohammed Ahmed. (1990). A survey of the harar jugal (wall) and its gate.
Proceeding of the first National Conference of Ethiopian Studies (Addis Ababa, 11-12
April 1990). Addis Ababa, Institute of Ethiopian Studies, 321-334.
265
አብዱረህማን መሐመድ ኮራም፡ (1984) መኽማማ፡የሐረሪ ተረትና ምሳሌ ከነ አማርኛ ትርጉሙ አዲሰ አበባ ኢትዮጲያ
Abdurrahman Muhammad Koram. (1992 GC).Harari idioms with their Amharic
translation. Addis Ababa: Ethiopia
Abir M. (1968). Ethiopia: Era of princes, Longmans, green and co. London: L
td. London an Harlow.
Abir, M. (1980). Ethiopia and the red sea: The rise and decline of Solomonic dynasty and
Muslim-European rivalry in the region. London: Frank Cass and Company.
Ahmed Hassen Omer. (2001). Some notes on Harar and the local trade routes: A report on the
view of ex-merchants of Shäwa (1839-1935). Annales d'Ethiopie, 17, 141-148.
Ahmed Zekaria (1991, November). Harari coins, preliminary survey. Journal of Ethiopian
Studies, 24, 18-27
Ahmed Zekaria. (1997). Some notes on the account-book of Amir Abd Al-Shakur B. Yusuf
(1783-17940) of Harar, Sudanic Africa.8, 17-36.
Ahmed Zekaria. (1999). The Portuguese Queen: A Harari legend. Paper presented at the 5th
International Conference on the History of Ethiopian Art: Lisbon, Portugal.
Ahmed Zekaria. (2003). Some Remarks on the Shrine of Harar, in Bertrand Hirsch and Manfred
Kropp (eds.), Saints, Biographies and History in Africa. Frankfurt: Peter Lang.
Akkari, A.B. (2004). Socialization, Learning and Education in Koranic Schools. Mediterranean
Journal of Education Studies, 9(2), 1-22
Al Kandari, K. M. (2004). Islamic school: Challenges and potentials in the 21st century: A case
study of Al-Amal, a private bilingual school in Kuwait. Dissertation submitted to the
Faculty of the Virginia Polytechnic Institute and State University in partial fulfillment of
the requirements for the degree of Doctor in Philosophy in Teaching and Learning.
Alessandro, G. (2010). Texts in the mawlid collection in harar: Some first critical observations,
African Study Monographs 41, 52.
Alkaaf, F., Jindal-Snape, D., Roger, A. (2011). Basic Education Reform in Oman. International
Journal of Academic Research, 3(4), 309-314
Assefa Abbebe. (1988, May). Marriage and family system of Adere. College of Social Science,
Addis Ababa University, unpublished.
266
Avishai Ben-Dror. (1974). Arab migration to east Africa. International Journal of African
Historical Studies, 7(3), 367-390.
Avishai Ben-Dror. (2008, July). The Egyptian hikimdariya of Harar and its hinterland:
Historical aspect, 1875-1887. A PhD Dissertation Submitted to the School of History,
Tel Aviv University.
Ayele Haile. (1999). Marriage practice among Adere society. Senior thesis, Addis Ababa
University Department of Sociology. Addis Ababa: Ethiopia.
Barker, C. W. (1842). Extract report on the probable geographical position of Harar: With some
information relative to the various tribes in the vicinity. Journal of Royal Geographical
Society of London, 12, 238.
Barnes, C. (2001). Provinces and princes: Power and the eastern Ethiopian periphery c.1906-
1916. Journal of Ethiopian Studies, 34(2), 95-120.
Bayley, H. (2006). The lost language of symbolism. New York: Dover Publication, Inc.
Blundell, H. W. (1900). A journey through Abyssinia to the Nile. The Geographical Journal,
15(2), 97-118.
Božović J. (2007). Business ethics in banking. Economics and Organization, 4(2), 173-182.
Braukamper, U. (1971). Islamic principalities in southeast Ethiopia between the 13th and 16th
centuries. Ethiopianist Notes. 1(2), 27-28
Braukamper, U. (1998). Notes on the islamization and the Muslim shrines of Harar Plateau.
Retrieved from HTML pages of Harar website, circa 1998.
Braukamper, U. (2002). Islamic History and Culture in Southern Ethiopia: Collected Essays.
Hamburg: LIT.
Burton, R. (1894). First footsteps in east Africa, or an exploration of Harar, (Vols. I and II).
New York: Dover Publication.
267
Caulk, R. A. (1967). Harar in the 19th century and the loss of its independence. A paper prepared
in Advance for Interdisciplinary Seminars of the Faculty of Arts and Education, Haile
Sellassie I University
Caulk, R.A. (1971). The occupation of Harar: January1887. Journal of Ethiopian Studies, 9(2),
1-20.
Caulk, R. A. (1975). Menelik’s conquest and the local leaders in Harar. Paper presented at the
Harari Studies Conference, June 1975. Addis Ababa, Ethiopia.
Caulk, R. A. (1977). Harar town and its neighbors in the nineteenth century. Journal of African
History, 18 (3), 369-386.
Cerulli, E. (1936). Islam yesterday and today. Istituto Per L’orient, Roma. Trans. Emran Waber
(1971). Roma Institute per L. orient.
Cobbah, J. A. M. (1987). African values and human rights debate: An African perspective.
Human Rights Quarterly, 9(3), 312-320.
Cohen, L., Manion, L., & Morrison, K. (2000). Research methods in education. London and
New York: Routledge.
Davidson, B. (1969). The African genius. Boston, MA: Ohio University Press.
Desplat, P. (2005). The articulation of religious identities and their boundaries in Ethiopia:
Labelling differences and processes of contextualization in Islam. Journal of Religion in
Africa, 35 (4), 482-505
DiMatteo, L. A. (2000). The law of international contracting. The Netherlands: Kluwer Law
International. The Hague.
Donham, D. L. & Jams, W. (1986). The southern marches of imperial Ethiopia: Essays in Social
Anthropology and History. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Dowd, D. O. (1970). Education among the aderis of harari: Overseas challenge. London.
University College of Addis Ababa. Addis Ababa: Ethiopia.
Duh, M. & Belak, J. (2009). Core values, culture and ethical climate in family versus non-family
enterprises. Paper presented on 7th International Conference on Management,
Enterprises and Benchmarking held in Budapest, Hungary, June 5-6.
Duri, Mahammad. (1955). The muggads of Harari. Ethnology Society Bulletin. 1(4), 85-88.
268
Elias, T. O. (1956). The nature of African customary law. Manchester: Manchester University
Press.
Emran Mahammad Waber. (2009). A brief history of Harar: Its people and their literature,
unpublished.
Fauvelle-Aymar F.X., Bruxellers, L., Chekroun A., Mensan R., Onezime O., Asnake W.,
Deresse A., Hailu Z., Hirsch B., Ahmed M. (2006). A Topographic Survey and Some
Soundings at Nora: an Ancient Muslim Town of Ethiopia. Journal of Ethiopian Studies,
xxxix (1-2)
Feather, N., T. (1975). Values in education and society. New York: Free Press.
Fourcode, M. & Healy, K. (2007). Moral views of market society. Annual Review of Sociology,
33, 14.1-14.27.
Getahun, A. Krikorian, A. D. (1973). Chat: Coffee’s rival from Harar, Ethiopia. I. Botany,
Cultivation and Use. Economic Botany, 27(4), 353-377.
Gibb, C. (1996) In the City of Saints: Religion, Politics and Gender in Harar, Ethiopia. Thesis
submitted for the degree of D. Phil in social anthropology, university of Oxford.
Gibb, C. (1997a). Constructing past and present in Harar. 378-390. Ethiopia in broader
perspective. (Ed.) Fukui, Katsuyoshi, et al., (Kyoto), Papers of the thirteenth International
Conference of Ethiopian Studies.
Gibb, C. (1997b). In the city of saints: Religion, politics and gender in Harar: Ethiopia. Oxford:
University of Oxford.
Gibb, C. (1997c). Religion and ethnicity in the city of Harar. Paper presented at the 13 th
International Conference of Ethiopian Studies. Addis Ababa: Ethiopia
Gibb, C. (1999). Baraka without borders: Integrating communities in the city of saints. Journal
of Religion in Africa, 27(1), 88-108.
.Gibb, C. (2002). Creating and debating Harari identity over the internet. Anthropologica, 44(1),
55-67.
Gleichen, E. (1898). With the mission to Menelik, 1897. London: Edward Arnold.
Gluckman, M. (1964). The Judicial Process among the Barotse of the Northern Rhodesia,
Manchester University Press.
269
Gori, A. (2010). Texts in the mawlid collection in harar: Some first critical observations. African
Study Monographs, Suppl. 41, 51-62
Graeber, D. (2001). Toward an anthropological theory of value: The false coin of our own
dreams. London: Palsgrave Macmillan.
Guebre Sellassie. (Gara Selasse). Chronique du Regne de Menelik Roi des Rois d’Ethiopie
(Paris, 1930-31), p.245
Haggai, E. (1994). Ethiopia and the Middle East. Boulder, Co: Lynne Rienner Publishers, Inc.
Halyard, M. (2011). Universal values and African norms: An examination of African human
rights perspectives in an increasingly connected world. Pretoria, South Africa: Idasa.
ሐረሪ ብሔራዊ ሊግ፤ (1992) የሐረሪ አመጽ፤ ፋና ዲሞክራሲ አሳታሚ፤ Harari League (2000). (Harari
Rebellion. Fana Democracy Press.
Haykal M. H. (2008).The Life of Muhammad, PBUH. New York: Islamic book trust.
Hecht, E. D. (1980). The voluntary association and the social status of Harari women. Paper
presented at 6th International Conference of Ethiopian Studies, Tel-Aviv.
Hecht, E. D. (1982). The city of Harar and the traditional Harar house. Journal of Ethiopian
Studies, 15, 1-22.
Hecht, E. D. (1987). Harar and Lamu: A comparison of two east African Muslim societies. Trans
African Journal of History, 16 (1), 1-23.
Hecht, E. D. (1992). Basket work of Harar. African Study Monographs, Suppl. 18, 1-39.
Herbert, W. (1900, Feb. 9). A journey through Abyssinia to the Nile. The Geographical Journal,
15(2), 101-103.
Hussein A. (2010). Harar-Wallo relations revisited: Historical, religious and cultural dimensions.
African Study Monographs, Suppl.41, 111-117.
Huurne, D. (2004). It’s like carrying a heavy box with many people: A study about the
contribution of indigenous social security systems to poverty reduction. Master of Arts
Development Studies Radboud University. Nijmegen: Netherlands.
270
Ihsanoglu, E. (2004). The Madrasa of the Ottoman Empire. Foundation for Science, Technology
and Civilization: UK.
Ishak, S. N., Marzuk, N.H. & Md. Ali, J. (2009). The importance of translation mathematics old
script. Malaysian Journal of Mathematical Science, 3(1), 55-66.
Johnson J. C., (1990). Selecting ethnographic informants. USA: Sage Publications, Inc.
Josiah, V. (1987). African values and human rights debate: An African perspective. Human
Rights Quarterly.
Kahl, M. J. (1969). Ethiopia, treasure house of Africa, a review of Ethiopian currency and
related history. Malter-Westerfield.
Kertzer, D. (1988). Ritual, Politics and Power New haven, Conn.: Yale University Press.
Klemm, P. M. (2002). Shaping the future, wearing the past: Dress and the decorated female
body among Afran qallo Oromo in eastern Hararghe, Ethiopia. A dissertation submitted
to the Faculty of the Graduate School of Emory University in partial fulfillment of the
requirement of the degree of Doctor of Philosophy. Hararghe: Ethiopia.
Kluckhohn, C., Parson, T., & Shils, E. (1951). Values and value-orientations in the theory of
action: An exploration in definition and classification. In T. Parsons & E. Shils (Eds.).
Toward a general theory of action (pp.388-433). Cambridge, MA: Harvard University
Press.
Kung, H. (2007). Islam: Past, present, and future. Oxford: One World Publications. Translated
by John Bowden from German Der Islam: Geschichte, Gegenwart, Zukunit, published
2004 by Piper Verlag: Munich.
ላጽሶ ጊ.ድሌቦ (1982/90) የኢትዮጽያ ረጅም የሕዝብና የመንግሰት ታሪክ ንግድ ማታሚያ ቤት Lapiso, D. (1990).
Long History of the Ethiopian People and State, according to Ethiopian calendar in 1982.
Leslau, W. (1950). Wedding “law-suit” in Harar (Ethiopia). The Journal of American Folklore,
63(249), 363-365.
Maftuh, Zakaria. (2000). Harar Jugal, a fountain of the city culture. Harari Regional State
Bureau
271
Malinowski, B. (1964). Crime and custom in savage society. Paterson, NJ: Littlefield, Adams
and Company.
Martin, B. G. (1974). Arab migration to East Africa in the medieval times. International Journal
of African Historical Studies, 7(3), 367-390.
Martin, B. G. (1975). Mahdism, Muslim clerks and the holy wars in Ethiopia, 1300-1600.
Proceedings of the First United States Conference on Ethiopian Studies, 1973 (East
Lansing, 1975 pp. 81-100).
Bruce M. Meglino, & Elizabeth C. Ravlin. (1998). Individual values in organizations: Concepts,
controversies and research. Journal of Management, 24(3), 353-356.
Mohammad Abdurrahman. (1953a). Harari wedding custom, Part I. Ethnology Society Bulletin, 1
(2), 24-27.
Mohammad Abdurrahman. (1953b). Harari wedding custom, Part II. Ethnology Society Bulletin,
1(2), 24-27.
Moore, B. N., & Bruder, K. (2005). Philosophy, the power of ideas. New York: McGraw-Hill.
Muhammad Hassan. (1973).The relation between Harar and the surrounding Oromo: Between
1800-1887. Unpublished thesis, Department of History, Haile Sellassie I University,
Addis Ababa. Addis Ababa: Ethiopia.
Muhammad Hassan. (1980). Menelik’s conquest of Harar, 1887, and its effect on the political
organization of the surrounding Oromo up to 1900. In D. L. Donham and W. James
(Eds.), Working papers on society and history in imperial Ethiopia: The southern
periphery from the 1880's to 1974 (pp. 227-246). Cambridge: African Studies Center.
Muhammad Hassan. (1999). The city of Harar and islamization of the Oromo in Hararghe,
1550-1900. Paper presented at the 42 nd African Studies Association Annual Meeting,
Philadelphia.
Muhammad Ibrahim Sulyeman. (2005). ቀጠብቲ ሙዳይ Qetebti Muday. Artistic Printing Press,
Addis Ababa University.
Mullen, N. (2005). Chinese folk, art, festivals and symbolism in everyday life. Berkley, CA:
University of California.
Musa Kazim Gulcur. (2010). Good character: A comprehensive guide to manners and morals in
Islam. (Tran. Jessica Ozalp). New Jersey: Tughra Books.
National Council for the Social Studies. (1996). Civitas, Bulletin No. 86, Civitas.
272
Neumann O. (1902). From the Somali coast through southern Ethiopia to the Sudan.
Geographical Journal, 20 (4), 373-387.
Nicholl, C. (1997). Somebody else: Arthur Rimbaud in Africa, 1880-91. London: Jonathan Cape.
Orr, R. J. (2004). International symposium of the CIB W107 on globalization and construction
Meeting the challenge and reaping the benefit. Paper presented November 17-19, 2004,
Bangkok, Thailand.
Pankhurst, E. S. (1958). Harar under Egyptian rule. Ethiopian Observer, 2(2), 56-58.
Pankhurst, R. (1958). Harar under Egyptian occupation, Ethiopian Observer Vol. 2, (2), 53-57.
Pankhurst, R. (1965). The history of currency and banking in Ethiopia and the horn of Africa
from the middle ages to 1935. Ethiopian Observer, 8(4), 56.
Pan Wei. (2009). Core social values in contemporary societies, Diogenes 56(1), 53-73
Robbins R. H., & De Vita P. (1985). Anthropology and the teaching of human values.
Anthropology & Education Quarterly, 16(4), 251-256.
Rokeach, M. (1973). The nature of human values. New York: Free Press.
Rothbard, M. N. (2002). A history of money and banking int he United States: The colonial era
to world war II. Auburn, Alabama: Ludwig von Mises Institute.
Rousseau, J. (1987). The basic political writings. Cambridge. IN: Hackett Publishing.
Schwartz, S. H. (1992). Universals in the content and structure of values: Theoretical advances
and empirical tests in 20 countries. Advances in Experimental Social Psychology, 25, 1–
65.
Schwartz, S. H. (1994). Are there universal aspects in the structure and contents of human
values? Journal of Social Issues 50(4), 19-45.
Schwartz, S. H., & Bilsky, W. (1990). Toward theory of the universal content and structure of
values: Extensions and cross-cultural replications. Journal of Personality and Social
Psychology, 58(5), 878-891.
273
Shetler, J. B., & Dawit, Y. (2010). Building a “city of Pease” through inter-communal
association: Muslim-Christian relations in Harar, Ethiopia, 1887-2009.I, Journal of
Religion, Conflict and Peace, 4(1), 3.
Smith, E. W. (1952). African symbolism. Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute of Great
Britain and Ireland, 82(1), 9-35.
Stine, L. F., Cabak, M. A., & Groover, M. D. (1996). Blue beads as African-American cultural
symbols. Historical Archaeology, 30(3), 49-75.
Stine Linda France, Cabak Melanie A., & Groover Mark D. (1996). Blue beads as African-
American cultural symbols. Historical Archaeology, 30(3), 49-75.
Stitz, V. (1975). Arabic town records and the economic and population history of Harar during
the 19th Century. Paper prepared for the Conference on Harari Studies Organized by the
Historical Society of Ethiopia.
Stone, L. (1994). Family values in a historical perspective. The Tanner Lectures on Human
Values delivered at Harvard University November 16 and 17, 1994. Harvard.
Tamuri, Ab. H., Ismail, M.F., Jasmi. K.A., (2012). A New Approach in Islamic Education:
Mosque Based Teaching and Learning. Journal of Islamic and Arabic Education 4(1), 1-
10
Tarsitani, B. A., & Tarsitani, S. (2010). Integrating local knowledge in Ethiopian archives: Music
and manuscripts in the collection of Abdullahi Sheriff. African Study Monographs, Suppl.
41, 5-18.
Tenna, D. (2009). Traditional moral values of the Oromo of Ethiopia: A philosophical appraisal
of gada system. Thesis submitted to the Panjab University Chandigarh for the Degree of
Doctor of Philosophy (PhD) in the Faculty of Arts (Philosophy).
Teshale, Tibabu. (1995). The making of modern Ethiopia 1896-1974. Lawrenceville, NJ: Red
Sea Press.
Ullendore E. (1960). The Ethiopians: An introduction to country and people. London: Oxford
University Press.
274
United States Air Force Core Values. (1997, January 1). USA: United States Air Force.
VO Van, D. (2007). Harar, a cultural guide. Addis Ababa, Ethiopia: Shama Books.
Wagner, E. (1974). Three Arabic documents on the history of Harar. Journal of Ethiopian
Studies, Addis Ababa, 12(1), 213-218.
Waithaka, J. M. (1992). Primary education syllabus (Volume 1). Nairobi: Kenya Institute of
Education.
Waldron, S. R. (1975a). Social organizations and social control in the walled city of Harar,
Ethiopia. PhD Dissertation, Columbia University.
Waldron, S.R. (1975b). Within the wall and beyond: Harari ethnic identity and its future. Paper
presented at the Harari Studies Conference, June 1975 Addis Ababa: Ethiopia.
Waldron, S.R. (1978). Harar: The Muslim city of Ethiopia. From the Fifth International
Conference on Ethiopian Studies, Section B/April 13-16 Chicago
Waldron S. R. (1980). A farewell to Bab Haji: City symbolism and Harari identity, 1887-1977.
In D. Donham, and W. James (Eds.), Working papers on society and history in imperial
Ethiopia: The southern periphery from the 1880's to 1974 (pp. 247-270). Cambridge:
African Studies Center, 247-270.
West, G. E. (1965).Liberty and education: John Stuart Mill’s dilemma. The Journal of Royal
Institute of Philosophy, 40, 129-142.
Woube, K. (2010). The significance of Harari music: The case of pop songs in relation to the
objectives of the education and training, and cultural policies of Ethiopia. African Study
Monographs, Suppl.41, 133-147.
Yusuf A. (1957). Harari sausage and Harari sweet. Ethnological Society Bulletin, 1 (7), 249-251.
Yusuf, A. (1960)'An Inquiry into some Aspects of the Economy of Harar and the Records of the
Household Economy of the Amirs of Harar (1825-1875)’: Bulletin of the Ethnological
Society of the University College of Addis Ababa, 10 (July-Dec).
Zaimeche, S. (2002). Education in Islam: The role of the mosque. United Kingdom: Foundation
for Science, Technology and Civilization (FSTC Limited).
275